CODE OF
CRIMINAL PROCEDURE, 1973
NO.2 OF 1974
[25th January, 1974.] An Act to consolidate and amend the law relating to
Criminal Procedure.
BE it enacted by Parliament in the Twenty-fourth Year of the Republic of
India as follows:-
Chapter |
Title |
Sections |
|
|
|
Chapter I |
PRELIMINARY |
Sections 1-5 |
Chapter II |
CONSTITUTION OF CRIMINAL COURTS AND OFFICES |
Sections 6-25 |
Chapter III |
POWER OF COURTS |
Sections 26-35 |
Chapter IV |
POWERS OF SUPERIOR OFFICERS OF POLICE |
Sections 36-40 |
Chapter V |
ARREST OF PERSONS |
Sections 41-60 |
Chapter VI |
PROCESSES TO COMPEL APPEARANCE |
Sections 61-90 |
Chapter VII |
PROCESSES TO COMPEL THE PRODUCTION OF THINGS |
Sections 91-105 |
Chapter VIII |
SECURITY FOR KEEPING THE PEACE AND FOR GOOD BEHAVIOUR
|
Sections106-124 |
Chapter IX |
ORDER FOR MAINTENANCE OF WIVES, CHILDREN AND PARENTS
|
Sections125-128 |
Chapter X |
MAINTENANCE OF PUBLIC ORDER AND TRANQUILLITY |
Sections129-148 |
Chapter XI |
PREVENTIVE ACTION OF THE POLICE |
Section 149-153 |
Chapter XII |
INFORMATION TO THE POLICE AND THEIR POWERS TO INVESTIGATE
|
Section 154-176 |
Chapter XIII |
JURISDICTION OF THE CRIMINAL COURTS IN INQUIRIES AND TRIALS
|
Section 177-189 |
Chapter XIV |
CONDITIONS REQUISITE FOR INITIATION OF PROCEEDING |
Section 190-199 |
Chapter XV |
COMPLAINTS TO MAGISTRATES |
Section 200-203 |
Chapter XVI |
COMMENCEMENT OF PROCEEDINGS BEFORE MAGISTRATES |
Section 204-210 |
Chapter XVII |
THE CHARGE |
Section 211-224 |
Chapter XVIII |
TRIAL BEFORE A COURT OF SESSION |
Section 225-237 |
Chapter XIX |
TRIAL OF WARRANT-CASES BY MAGISTRATES |
Section 238-250 |
Chapter XX |
TRIAL OF SUMMONS-CASES BY MAGISTRATES |
Section 251-259 |
Chapter XXI |
SUMMARY TRIALS |
Section 260-265 |
Chapter XXII |
ATTENDANCE OF PERSONS CONFINED OR DETAINED IN PRISONS |
Section 266-271 |
Chapter XXIII |
EVIDENCE IN INQUIRIES AND TRIALS |
Section 272-299 |
Chapter XXIV |
GENERAL PROVISIONS AS TO INQUIRIES AND TRIALS |
Section 300-327 |
Chapter XXV |
PROVISIONS AS TO ACCUSED PERSONS OF UNSOUND MIND |
Section 328-339 |
Chapter XXVI |
PROVISIONS AS TO OFFENCES AFFECTING THE ADMINISTRATION OF
JUSTICE |
Section 340-352 |
Chapter XXVII |
THE JUDGEMENT |
Section 353-365 |
Chapter
XXVIII |
SUBMISSION OF DEATH SENTENCES FOR CONFIRMATION |
Section 366-371 |
Chapter XXIX |
APPEALS |
Section 372-394 |
Chapter XXX |
REFERENCE AND REVISION |
Section 395-405 |
Chapter XXXI |
TRANSFER OF CRIMINAL CASES |
Section 406-412 |
Chapter XXXII |
EXECUTION, SUSPENSION, REMISSION AND COMMUTATION OF SENTENCES |
Section 413-435 |
Chapter
XXXIII |
PROVISIONS AS TO BAIL AND BONDS |
Section 436-450 |
Chapter XXXIV |
DISPOSAL OF PROPERTY |
Section 451-459 |
Chapter XXXV |
IRREGULAR PROCEEDINGS |
Section 460-466 |
Chapter XXXVI |
LIMITATION FOR TAKING COGNIZANCE OF CERTAIN OFFENCES |
Section 461-473 |
Chapter
XXXVII |
LIMITATION FOR TAKING COGNIZANCE OF CERTAIN OFFENCES |
Section 474-484 |
CODE OF CRIMINAL
PROCEDURE, 1973
CHAPTER I
PRELIMINARY
1.Short title,
extent and commencement-
(1) This Act may be
called the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1973.
(2) It extends to the whole of India except the State of Jammu and Kashmir:
Provided that the provisions of this Code, other than those relating to
Chapters VIII, X and XI thereof, shall not apply-
(a)to the State of Nagaland,
(b)to the tribal areas,
but the concerned State Government may, by notification, apply such
provisions or any of them to the whole or part of the State of Nagaland or
such tribal areas, as the case may be, with such supplemental, incidental or
consequential modifications, as may be specified in the notification.
Explanation.- In this section, "tribal areas" means the territories which
immediately before the 21st day of January, 1972, were included in the
tribal areas of Assam, as referred to in paragraph 20 of the Sixth Schedule
to the Constitution, other than those within the local limits of the
municipality of Shillong.
(3) It shall come into force on the 1st day of April, 1974.
2.Definitions- In this Code, unless the context otherwise requires, -
(a)"bailable offence" means an offence which is shown as bailable in the
First Schedule, or which is made bailable by any other law for the time
being in force; and "non-bailable offence" means any other offence;
(b)"charge" includes any head of charge when the charge contains more heads
than one;
(c)"cognizable offence" means an offence for which, and "cognizable case"
means a case in which, a police officer may, in accordance with the First
Schedule or under any other law for the time being in force, arrest without
warrant;
(d)"complaint" means any allegation made orally or in writing to a
Magistrate, with a view to his taking action under this Code, that some
person, whether known or unknown, has committed an offence, but does not
include a police report.
Explanation.- A report made by a police officer in a case which discloses,
after investigation, the commission of a non-cognizable offence shall be
deemed to be a complaint; and the police officer by whom such report is made
shall be deemed to be the complainant;
(e)"High Court" means, -
(i) in relation to any State, the High Court for that State;
(ii) in relation to a Union territory to which the jurisdiction of the High
Court for a State has been extended by law, that High Court;
(iii) in relation to any other Union territory, the highest Court of
criminal appeal for that territory other than the Supreme Court of India;
(f)"Indian" means the territories to which this Code extends;
(g)"inquiry" means every inquiry, other than a trial, conducted under this
Code by a Magistrate or Court;
(h)"investigation" includes all the proceedings under this Code for the
collection of evidence conducted by a police officer or by any person (other
than a Magistrate) who is authorised by a Magistrate in this behalf;
(i)" judicial proceeding" includes any proceeding in the course of which
evidence is or may be legally taken on oath;
(j)"local jurisdiction", in relation to a Court or Magistrate, means the
local area within which the Court or Magistrate may exercise all or any of
its or his powers under this Code;
(k)"metropolitan area" means the area declared, or deemed to be declared,
under section 8, to be a metropolitan area;
(l)"non-cognizable offence" means an offence for which, and "non-cognizable
case" means a case in which, a police officer has no authority to arrest
without warrant;
(m)"notification" means a notification published in the Official Gazette;
(n)"offence" means any act or omission made punishable by any law for the
time being
in force and includes any act in respect of which a complaint may be made
under section 20 of the Cattle-trespass Act, 1871( 1 of 1871);
(o)"officer in charge of a police station" includes, when the officer in
charge of the police station is absent from the station-house or unable from
illness or other cause to perform his duties, the police officer present at
the station-house who is next in rank to such officer and is above the rank
of constable or, when the State Government so directs, any other police
officer so present;
(p)"place" includes a house, building, tent, vehicle and vessel;
(q)"pleader", when used with reference to any proceeding in any Court, means
a person authorised by or under any law for the time being in force, to
practise in such Court, and includes any other person appointed with the
permission of the Court to act in such proceeding;
( r ) " police report" means a report forwarded by a police officer to a
Magistrate under
sub-section (2) of section 173;
(s)"police report" means a report forwarded by a police officer or specially
by the State
Government, to be a police station, and includes any local area specified by
the State Government in this behalf;
(t)"prescribed" means prescribed by rules made under this Code;
(u)"Public Prosecutor" means any person appointed under section 24, and
includes any person acting under the directions of a Public Prosecutor;
(v)"sub-division" means a sub-division of a district;
(w)"summons-case" means a case relating to an offence, and not being a
warrant-case;
(x)"warrant-case" means a case relating to an offence punishable with death,
imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a term exceeding two years;
(y)words and expressions used herein and not defined but defined in the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860) have the meanings respectively assigned to
them in that Code.
3.Construction of references-
(1) In this Code
(a) any reference, without any qualifying words, to a Magistrate, shall be
construed, unless the context otherwise requires, -
(i)in relation to an area outside a metropolitan area, as a reference to a
Judicial Magistrate;
(ii)in relation to a metropolitan area, as a reference to a Metropolitan
Magistrate;
(b) any reference to a Magistrate of the second class shall, in relation to
an area outside a metropolitan area, be construed as a reference to a
Judicial Magistrate of the second class, and, in relation to a metropolitan
area, as a reference to a Metropolitan Magistrate;
(c) any reference to a Magistrate of the first class shall, -
(i)in relation to a metropolitan area, be construed as a reference to a
Metropolitan Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in that area,
(ii)in relation to any other area, be construed as a reference to a Judicial
Magistrate of the first class exercising jurisdiction in that area;
(d) any reference to the Chief Judicial Magistrate shall, in relation to a
metropolitan area, be construed as a reference to the Chief Metropolitan
Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in that area.
(2) In this Code, unless the context otherwise requires, any reference to
the Court of a Judicial Magistrate shall, in relation to a metropolitan
area, be construed as a reference to the Court of the Metropolitan
Magistrate for that area.
(3) Unless the context otherwise requires, any reference in any enactment
passed before the commencement of this Code, -
(a) to a Magistrate of the first class, shall be construed as a reference to
a Judicial Magistrate of the first class;
(b) to a Magistrate of the second class or of the third class, shall be
construed as a reference to a Judicial Magistrate of the second class;
(c) to a Presidency Magistrate or Chief Presidency Magistrate, shall be
construed as a reference, respectively, to a Metropolitan Magistrate or the
Chief Metropolitan Magistrate;
(d) to any area which is included in a metropolitan area, as a reference to
such metropolitan area, and any reference to a Magistrate of the first class
or of the second class in relation to such area, shall be construed as
reference to the Metropolitan Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in such
area.
(4) Where, under any law, other than this Code, the function exercisable by
a Magistrate relate to matters-
(a) which involve the appreciation or sifting of evidence or the formulation
of any decision which exposes any person to any punishment or penalty or
detention in custody pending investigation, inquiry or trial or would have
the effect of sending him for trial before any Court,they shall, subject to
the provisions of this Code, be exercisable by a Judicial Magistrate; or
(b) which are administrative or executive in nature, such as, the granting
of a licence, the suspension or cancellation of a licence, sanctioning a
prosecution or withdrawing from a prosecution, they shall, subject as
aforesaid, be exercisable by an Executive Magistrate.
4.Trial of offences under the Indian Penal Code and other laws.-
(1) All offences under the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860) shall be
investigated, inquired into, tried, and otherwise dealt with according to
the provisions hereinafter contained.
(2) All offences under any other law shall be investigated, inquired into,
tried, and otherwise dealt
with according to the same provisions, but subject to any enactment for the
time being in force
regulating the manner or place of investigating, inquiring into, trying or
otherwise dealing with
such offences.
5.Saving.- Nothing contained in this Code shall, in the absence of a
specific provision to the contrary, affect any special or local law for the
time being in force, or any special jurisdiction or power conferred, or any
special form of procedure prescribed, by any other law for the time being in
force
CHAPTER II
CONSTITUTION OF CRIMINAL COURTS AND OFFICES
6.Classes of
Criminal Courts.-
Besides the High Courts and the Courts constituted under any law, other than
this Code, there shall be, in every State, the following classes of Criminal
Courts, namely:-
(i) Courts of Session;
(ii) Judicial Magistrates of the first class and, in any metropolitan area,
Metropolitan Magistrates;
(iii) Judicial Magistrates of the second class; and
(iv) Executive Magistrates.
7.Territorial divisions.- (1) Every State shall be a sessions
division or shall consist of sessions divisions; and every sessions division
shall, for the purposes of this Code, be a district or consist of districts:
Provided that every metropolitan area shall, for the said purposes, be a
separate sessions division and district.
(2) The State Government may, after consultation with the High Court, alter
the limits or the number of such divisions and districts.
(3) The State Government may, after consultation with the High Court, divide
any district into sub-divisions and may alter the limits or the number of
such sub-divisions.
(4) The sessions divisions, districts and sub-divisions existing in a State
at the commencement of this Code, shall be deemed to have been formed under
this section.
8.Metropolitan areas.- (1) The State Government may, by notification,
declare that , as from such date as may be specified in the notification,
any area in the State comprising a city or town whose population exceeds one
million shall be a metropolitan area for the purposes of this Code.
(2) As from the commencement of this Code, each of the Presidency-towns of
Bombay, Calcutta and Madras and the city of Ahmedabad shall be deemed to be
declared under sub-section (1) to be a metropolitan area.
(3) The State Government may, by notification, extend, reduce or alter the
limits of a metropolitan area but the reduction or alteration shall not be
so made as to reduce the population of such area to less than one million.
(4) Where, after an area has been declared, or deemed to have been declared
to be, a metropolitan area, the population of such area falls below one
million, such area shall, on and from such date as the State Government may,
by notification, specify in this behalf, cease to be a metropolitan area;
but notwithstanding such cesser, any inquiry, trial or appeal pending
immediately before such cesser before any Court or Magistrate in such area
shall continue to be dealt with under this Code, as if such cesser had not
taken place.
(5) Where the State Government reduces or alters, under sub-section (3), the
limits of any metropolitan area, such reduction or alteration shall not
affect any inquiry, trial or appeal pending immediately before such
reduction or alteration before any Court or Magistrate, and every such
inquiry, trial or appeal shall continue to be dealt with under this Code as
if such reduction or alteration had not taken place.
Explanation.- In this section, the expression "population" means the
population as ascertained at the last preceding census of which the relevant
figures have been published.
9.Court of Session.- (1)The State Government shall establish a Court
of Session for every sessions division.
(2) Every Court of Session shall be presided over by a Judge, to be
appointed by the High Court.
(3) The High Court may also appoint Additional Sessions Judges and Assistant
Sessions Judges to exercise jurisdiction in a Court of Session.
(4) The Sessions Judge of one sessions division may be appointed by the High
Court to be also an Additional Sessions Judge of another division, and in
such case he may sit for the disposal of cases at such place or places in
the other division as the High Court may direct.
(5) Where the office of the Sessions Judge is vacant, the High Court may
make arrangements for the disposal of any urgent application which is, or
may be, made or pending before such Court of Session by an Additional or
Assistant Sessions Judge, or, if there be no Additional or Assistant
Sessions Judge, by a Chief Judicial Magistrate, in the sessions division;
and every such Judge or Magistrate shall have jurisdiction to deal with any
such application.
(6) The Court of Session shall ordinarily hold its sitting at such place or
places as the High Court may, by notification, specify; but, if, in any
particular case, the Court of Session is of opinion that it will tend to the
general convenience of the parties and witnesses to hold its sittings at any
other place in the sessions division, it may, with the consent of the
prosecution and the accused, sit at that place for the disposal of the case
or the examination of any witness or witnesses therein.
Explanation.- For the purposes of this Code, "appointment" does not include
the first appointment, posting or promotion of a person by the Government to
any Service, or post in connection with the affairs of the Union or of a
State, where under any law, such appointment, posting or promotion is
required to be made by Government.
10.Subordination of Assistant Sessions Judges.- (1) All Assistant
Sessions Judges shall be subordinate to the Sessions Judge in whose Court
they exercise jurisdiction.
(2) The Sessions Judge may, from time to time, make rules consistent with
this Code, as to the distribution of business among such Assistant Sessions
Judges.
(3) The Sessions Judge may also make provision for the disposal of any
urgent application, in the event of his absence or inability to act, by an
Additional or Assistant Sessions Judge, or, if there be no Additional or
Assistant Sessions Judge, by the Chief Judicial Magistrate, and every such
Judge or Magistrate shall be deemed to have jurisdiction to deal with any
such application.
11.Courts of Judicial Magistrates.- (1) In every district (not being
a metropolitan area), there shall be established as many Courts of Judicial
Magistrates of the first class and of the second class, and at such places,
as the State Government may, after consultation with the High Court, by
notification, specify.
(2) The presiding officers of such Courts shall be appointed by the High
Court.
(3) The High Court may, whenever it appears to it to be expedient or
necessary, confer the powers of a Judicial Magistrate of the first class or
of the second class on any member of the Judicial Service of the State,
functioning as a Judge in a Civil Court.
12.Chief Judicial Magistrate and Additional Chief Judicial Magistrate,
etc.- (1) In every district (not being a metropolitan area), the High
Court shall appoint a Judicial Magistrate of the first class to be the Chief
Judicial Magistrate.
(2) The High Court may appoint any Judicial Magistrate of the first class to
be an Additional Chief Judicial Magistrate, and such Magistrate shall have
all or any of the powers of a Chief Judicial Magistrate under this Code or
under any other law for the time being in force as the High Court may
direct.
(3) (a) The High Court may designate any Judicial Magistrate of the first
class in any sub-division as the Sub-divisional Judicial Magistrate and
relieve him of the responsibilities specified in this section as occasion
requires.
(b) Subject to the general control of the Chief Judicial Magistrate, every
Sub-divisional Judicial Magistrate shall also have and exercise, such powers
of supervision and control over the work of the Judicial Magistrates (other
than Additional Chief Judicial Magistrates) in the sub-division as the High
Court may, by general or special order, specify in this behalf.
13.Special Judicial Magistrates.- (1) The High Court may, if
requested by the Central or State Government so to do, confer upon any
person who holds or has held any post under the Government, all or any of
the powers conferred or conferrable by or under this Code on a Judicial
Magistrate of the second class, in respect to particular cases or to
particular classes of cases or to cases generally, in any district, not
being a metropolitan area:
Provided that no such power shall be conferred on a person unless he
possesses such qualification
or experience in relation to legal affairs as the High Court may, by rules,
specify.
(2) Such Magistrates shall be called Special Judicial Magistrates and shall
be appointed for such
term, not exceeding one year at a time, as the High Court may, by general or
special order, direct.
14.Local jurisdiction of Judicial Magistrates.- (1) Subject to the
control of the High Court, the Chief Judicial Magistrate may, from time to
time, define the local limits of the areas within which the Magistrates
appointed under section 11 or under section 13 may exercise all or any of
the powers with which they may respectively be invested under this Code.
(2) Except as otherwise provided by such definition, the jurisdiction and
powers of every such
Magistrate shall extend throughout the district.
15.Subordination of Judicial Magistrates.- (1) Every Chief Judicial
Magistrate shall be subordinate to the Sessions Judge; and every other
Judicial Magistrate shall, subject to the general control of the Sessions
Judge, be subordinate to the Chief Judicial Magistrate.
(2) The Chief Judicial Magistrate may, from time to time, make rules or give
special orders, consistent with this Code, as to the distribution of
business among the Judicial Magistrates subordinate to him.
16.Courts of Metropolitan Magistrates.- (1) In every metropolitan
area, there shall be established as many Courts of Metropolitan
Magistrates, and at such places, as the State Government may, after
consultation with the High Court, by notification, specify.
(2) The presiding officers of such Courts shall be appointed by the High
Court.
(3) The jurisdiction and powers of every Metropolitan Magistrate shall
extend throughout the
metropolitan area.
17.Chief Metropolitan Magistrate and Additional Chief Metropolitan
Magistrates.- (1) The High Court shall, in relation to every
metropolitan area within its local jurisdiction, appoint a Metropolitan
Magistrate to be the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate for such metropolitan
area.
(2) The High Court may appoint any Metropolitan Magistrate to be an
Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrate, and such Magistrate shall have all
or any of the powers of a Chief Metropolitan Magistrate under this Code or
under any other law for the time being in force as the High Court may
direct.
18.Special Metropolitan Magistrates.- (1) The High Court may, if
requested by the Central or State Government so to do, confer upon any
person who holds or has held any post under the Government, all or any of
the powers conferred or conferrable by or under this Code on a Metropolitan
Magistrate, in respect to particular cases or to particular classes of cases
or to cases generally, in any metropolitan area within its local
jurisdiction:
Provided that no such power shall be conferred on a person unless he
possesses such qualification or experience in relation to legal affairs as
the High Court may, by rules, specify.
(2) Such Magistrates shall be called Special Metropolitan Magistrates and
shall be appointed for such term, not exceeding one year at a time, as the
High Court may, by general or special order, direct.
(3) Notwithstanding anything contained elsewhere in this Code, a Special
Metropolitan Magistrate shall not impose a sentence which a Judicial
Magistrate of the second class is not competent to impose outside the
Metropolitan area.
19.Subordination of Metropolitan Magistrates.- (1) The Chief
Metropolitan Magistrate and every Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrate
shall be subordinate to the Sessions Judge; and every other Metropolitan
Magistrate shall, subject to the general control of the Sessions Judge, be
subordinate to the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate.
(2) The High Court may, for the purposes of this Code, define the extent of
the subordination, if any, of the Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrates
to the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate.
(3) The Chief Metropolitan Magistrate may, from time to time, make rules or
give special orders, consistent with this Code, as to the distribution of
business among the Metropolitan Magistrates and as to the allocation of
business to an Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrate.
20.Executive Magistrates.-(1) In every district and in every
metropolitan area, the State Government may appoint as many persons as it
thinks fit to be Executive Magistrates and shall appoint one of them to be
the District Magistrate.
(2) The State Government may appoint any Executive Magistrate to be an
Additional district Magistrate, and such Magistrate shall have all or any of
the powers of a District Magistrate under this Code or under any other law
for the time being in force.
(3) Whenever, in consequence of the office of a District Magistrate becoming
vacant, any officer succeeds temporarily to the executive administration of
the district, such officer shall, pending the orders of the State
Government, exercise all the powers and perform all the duties respectively
conferred and imposed by this Code on the District Magistrate.
(4) The State Government may place an Executive Magistrate in charge of a
sub-division and may relieve him of the charge as occasion requires; and the
Magistrate so placed in charge of a sub-division shall be called the
Sub-divisional Magistrate.
(5) Nothing in this section shall preclude the State Government from
conferring, under any law for the time being in force, on a Commissioner of
Police, all or any of the powers of an Executive Magistrate in relation to a
metropolitan area.
21.Special Executive Magistrates.- The State Government may appoint,
for such term as it may think fit, Executive Magistrates, to be known as
Special Executive Magistrates for particular areas or for the performance of
particular functions and confer on such Special Executive Magistrates such
of the powers as are conferrable under this Code on Executive Magistrates,
as it may deem fit.
22.Local jurisdiction of Executive Magistrates.- (1) Subject to the
control of the State Government, the District Magistrate may, from time to
time, define the local limits of the areas within which the Executive
Magistrates may exercise all or any of the powers with which they may be
invested under this Code.
(2) Except as otherwise provided by such definition, the jurisdiction and
powers of every such Magistrate shall extend throughout the district.
23.Subordination of Executive Magistrates.- (1) All Executive
Magistrates, other than the Additional District Magistrate, shall be
subordinate to the District Magistrate, and every Executive Magistrate
(other than the Sub-divisional Magistrate) exercising powers in a
sub-division shall also be subordinate to the Sub-divisional Magistrate,
subject, however, to the general control of the District Magistrate.
(2) The District Magistrate may, from time to time, make rules or give
special orders, consistent with this Code, as to the distribution of
business among the Executive Magistrates subordinate to him and as to the
allocation of business to an Additional District Magistrate.
24.Public Prosecutors.- (1)For every High Court, the Central
Government or the State Government shall, after consultation with the High
Court, appoint a Public Prosecutor for conducting, in such Court, any
prosecution, appeal or other proceeding on behalf of the Central or State
Government, as the case may be.
(2) For every district the State Government shall appoint a Public
Prosecutor and may also appoint one or more Additional Public Prosecutors
for the district.
(3) The District Magistrate shall, in consultation with the Sessions Judge,
prepare a panel of names of persons who are, in his opinion, fit to be
appointed as the Public Prosecutor or Additional Public Prosecutor for the
district.
(4) No person shall be appointed by the State Government as the Public
Prosecutor or Additional Public Prosecutor for the district unless his name
appears on the panel of names prepared by the District Magistrate under
sub-section (3).
(5) A person shall only be eligible to be appointed as a Public Prosecutor
or an Additional Public Prosecutor under sub-section (1) or sub-section (2),
if he has been in practice as an advocate for not less than seven years.
(6) The Central Government or the State Government may appoint, for the
purposes of any case or class of cases, an advocate who has been in practice
for not less than ten years, as a Special Public Prosecutor.
25.Assistant Public Prosecutors.- (1) The State Government shall
appoint in every district one or more Assistant Public Prosecutors for
conducting prosecutions in the Courts of Magistrates.
(2) Save as otherwise provided in sub-section (3), no police officer shall
be eligible to be appointed as an Assistant Public Prosecutor.
(3) Where no Assistant Public Prosecutor is available for the purposes of
any particular case,
the District Magistrate may appoint any other person to be the Assistant
Public Prosecutor in charge of that case:
Provided that a police officer shall not be so appointed-
(a) if he has taken any part in the investigation into the offence with
respect to which the accused is being prosecuted; or
(b) if he is below the rank of Inspector.
CHAPTER III
POWER OF COURTS
26.Courts by which
offences are triable.-
Subject to the other provisions of this Code.-
(a) any offence under the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860) may be tried by -
(i) (i) the High Court, or
(ii) the Court of Session, or
(iii) any other Court by which such offence is shown in the First Schedule
to be triable;
(b) any offence under any other law shall, when any Court is mentioned in
this behalf in such law, be tried by such Court and when no Court is so
mentioned, may be tried by-
(i) the High Court, or
(ii) any other Court by which such offence is shown in the First Schedule to
be
triable.
27.Jurisdiction in the case of juveniles.- Any offence not punishable
with death or imprisonment for life, committed by any person who at the date
when he appears or is brought before the Court is under the age of sixteen
years, may be tried by the Court of a Chief Judicial Magistrate, or by any
Court specially empowered under the Children Act, 1960,(60 of 1960) or any
other law for the time being in force providing for the treatment, training
and rehabilitation of youthful offenders.
28.Sentences which High Courts and Sessions Judges may pass.- (1) A
High Court may pass any sentence authorised by law.
(2) A Sessions Judge or Additional Sessions Judge may pass any sentence
authorised by law; but any sentence of death passed by any such Judge shall
be subject to confirmation by the High Court.
(3) An Assistant Sessions Judge may pass any sentence authorised by law
except a sentence of death or of imprisonment for life or of imprisonment
for a term exceeding ten years.
29.Sentences which Magistrates may pass.- (1) The Court of a Chief
Judicial Magistrate may pass any sentence authorised by law except a
sentence of death or of imprisonment for life or of imprisonment for a term
exceeding seven years.
(2) The Court of a Magistrate of the first class may pass a sentence of
imprisonment for a term not exceeding three years, or of fine not exceeding
five thousand rupees, or of both.
(3) The Court of a Magistrate of the second class may pass a sentence of
imprisonment for a term not exceeding one year, or of fine not exceeding one
thousand rupees, or of both.
(3) The Court of a Chief Metropolitan Magistrate shall have the powers of
the Court of a Chief Judicial Magistrate and that of a Metropolitan
Magistrate, the powers of the Court of a Magistrate of the first class.
30.Sentence of imprisonment in default of fine.- (1) The Court of a
Magistrate may award such term of imprisonment in default of payment of fine
as is authorised by law:
Provided that the term-
(a) is not in excess of the powers of the Magistrate under section 29;
(b) shall not, where imprisonment has been awarded as part of the
substantive sentence, exceed one-fourth of the term of imprisonment which
the Magistrate is competent to inflict as punishment for the offence
otherwise than as imprisonment in default of payment of the fine.
(2) The imprisonment awarded under this section may be in addition to a
substantive sentence of imprisonment for the maximum term awardable by the
Magistrate under section 29.
31.Sentence in cases of conviction of several offences at one trial.-
(1) When a person is convicted at one trial of two or more offences, the
Court may, subject to the provisions of section 71 of the Indian Penal
Code,(45 of 1860) sentence him for such offences, to the several punishments
prescribed therefor which such Court is competent to inflict; such
punishments when consisting of imprisonment to commence the one after the
expiration of the other in such order as the Court may direct, unless the
Court directs that such punishments shall run concurrently.
(2) In the case of consecutive sentences, it shall not be necessary for the
Court by reason only of the aggregate punishment for the several offences
being in excess of the punishment which it is competent to inflict on
conviction of a single offence, to send the offender for trial before a
higher Court:
Provided that-
(a) in no case shall such person be sentenced to imprisonment for a longer
period than fourteen years;
(b) the aggregate punishment shall not exceed twice the amount of punishment
which the Court is competent to inflict for a single offence.
(3) For the purpose of appeal by a convicted person, the aggregate of the
consecutive sentences
passed against him under this section shall be deemed to be a single
sentence.
32.Mode of conferring powers.- (1) In conferring powers under this
Code, the High Court or the State Government, as the case may be, may, by
order, empower persons specially by name or in virtue of their offices or
classes of officials generally by their official titles.
(2) Every such order shall take effect from the date on which it is
communicated to the person so
empowered.
33.Powers of officers appointed.- Whenever any person holding an
office in the service of Government who has been invested by the High Court
or the State Government with any powers under this Code throughout any local
area is appointed to an equal or higher office of the same nature, within a
like local area under the same State Government, he shall, unless the High
Court or the State Government, as the case may be, otherwise directs, or has
otherwise directed, exercise the same powers in the local area in which he
is so appointed.
34.Withdrawal of powers.- (1) The High Court or the State Government,
as the case may be, may withdraw all or any of the powers conferred by it
under this Code on any person or by any officer subordinate to it.
(2) Any powers conferred by the Chief Judicial Magistrate or by the District
Magistrate may be
withdrawn by the respective Magistrate by whom such powers were conferred.
35.Powers of Judges and Magistrates exercisable by their
successors-in-office.- (1) Subject to the other provisions of this Code,
the powers and duties of a Judge or Magistrate may be exercised or performed
by his successor-in-office.
(2) When there is any doubt as to who is the successor-in-office of any
Additional or Assistant Sessions Judge, the Sessions Judge shall determine
by order in writing the Judge who shall, for the purposes of this Code or of
any proceedings or order thereunder, be deemed to be the successor-in-office
of such Additional or Assistant Sessions Judge.
(3) When there is any doubt as to who is the successor-in-office of any
Magistrate, the Chief Judicial Magistrate, or the District Magistrate, as
the case may be, shall determine by order in writing the Magistrate who
shall, for the purpose of this Code or of any proceedings or order
thereunder, be deemed to be the successor-in-office of such Magistrate.
CHAPTER IV
A.- POWERS OF SUPERIOR OFFICERS OF POLICE
36.Powers of
superior officers of police.-
Police officers superior in rank to an officer in charge of a police station
may exercise the same powers, throughout the local area to which they are
appointed, as may be exercised by such officer within the limits of his
station.
B.-AID TO THE MAGISTRATES AND THE POLICE
37.Public when to assist Magistrates and police.- Every person is
bound to assist a Magistrate or police officer reasonably demanding his aid-
(a) in the taking or preventing the escape of any other person whom such
Magistrate or police officer is authorised to arrest; or
(b) in the prevention or suppression of a breach of the peace; or
(c) in the prevention of any injury attempted to be committed to any
railway, canal, telegraph or public property.
38.Aid to person, other than police officer, executing warrant.- When
a warrant is directed to a person other than a police officer, any other
person may aid in the execution of such warrant, if the person to whom the
warrant is directed be near at hand and acting in the execution of the
warrant.
39.Public to give information of certain offences.- (1) Every person,
aware of the commission of , or of the intention of any other person
to commit, any offence punishable under any of the following sections of the
Indian Penal
Code,(45 of 1860) namely:-
(i) sections 121 to 126, both inclusive, and section 130 (that is to say,
offences against the State specified in Chapter VI of the said Code);
(ii) sections 143, 144, 145, 147 and 148 (that is to say, offences against
the public tranquillity specified in Chapter VIII of the said Code);
(iii) sections 161 to 165A, both inclusive (that is to say, offences
relating to illegal gratification);
(iv) sections 272 to 278, both inclusive (that is to say, offences relating
to adulteration of food and drugs, etc.);
(v) sections 302, 303 and 304 (that is to say, offences affecting life);
(vi) section 382 (that is to say, offence of theft after preparation made
for causing death, hurt or restraint in order to the committing of the
theft);
(vii) sections 392 to 399, both inclusive, and section 402 (that is to say,
offences of robbery and dacoity);
(viii) section 409 (that is to say, offence relating to criminal breach of
trust by public servant, etc.);
(ix) sections 431 to 439, both inclusive (that is to say, offences of
mischief against property);
(x) sections 449 and 450 (that is to say, offence of house-trespass);
(xi) sections 456 to 460, both inclusive (that is to say, offences of
lurking house-trespass); and
(xii) sections 489A to 489E, both inclusive (that is to say, offences
relating to currency notes and bank notes),
shall, in the absence of any reasonable excuse, the burden of proving which
excuse shall lie upon the person so aware, forthwith give information to the
nearest Magistrate or police officer of such commission or intention.
(2) For the purposes of this section, the term "offence" includes any act
committed at any place out of India which would constitute an offence if
committed in India.
40.Duty of officers employed in connection with the affairs of a village
to make certain report.- (1) Every officer employed in connection with
the affairs of a village and every person residing in a village shall
forthwith communicate to the nearest Magistrate or to the officer in charge
of the nearest police station, whichever is nearer, any information which he
may possess respecting-
(a) the permanent or temporary residence of any notorious receiver or vendor
of stolen property in or near such village;
(b) the resort to any place within, or the passage through, such village of
any person whom he knows, or reasonably suspects, to be a thug, robber,
escaped convict or proclaimed offender;
(c) the commission of, or intention to commit, in or near such village any
non-bailable offence or any offence punishable under section 143, section
144, section 145, section 147, or section 148 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of
1860);
(d) the occurrence in or near such village of any sudden or unnatural death
or of any death under suspicious circumstances or the discovery in or near
such village of any corpse or part of a corpse, in circumstances which lead
to a reasonable suspicion that such a death has occurred or the
disappearance from such village of any person in circumstances which lead to
a reasonable suspicion that a non-bailable offence has been committed in
respect of such person;
(e) the commission of, or intention to commit, at any place out of India
near such village any act which, if committed in India, would be an offence
punishable under any of the following sections of the Indian Penal Code,(45
of 1860) namely, 231 to 238 (both inclusive), 302, 304, 382, 392 to 399
(both inclusive), 402, 435, 436, 449, 450, 457 to 460 (both inclusive),
489A, 489B, 489C and 489D;
(f) any matter likely to affect the maintenance of order or the prevention
of crime or the safety of person or property respecting which the District
Magistrate, by general or special order made with the previous sanction of
the State Government, has directed him to communicate information.
(2) In this section, -
(i) "village" includes village-lands;
(ii) the expression "proclaimed offender" includes any person proclaimed as
an offender by any Court or authority in any territory in India to which
this Code does not extend, in respect of any act which if committed in the
territories to which this Code extends, would be an offence punishable under
any of the following sections of the Indian Penal Code,(45 of 1860) namely,
302, 304, 382, 392 to 399 (both inclusive), 402, 435, 436, 449, 450 and 457
to 460 (both inclusive);
(iii) the words "officer employed in connection with the affairs of the
village" means a member of the panchayat of the village and includes the
headman and every officer or other person appointed to perform any function
connected with the administration of the village.
CHAPTER V
ARREST OF PERSONS
41.When police may
arrest without warrant.-
(1) Any police officer may without an order from a Magistrate and without a
warrant, arrest any person-
(a) who has been concerned in any cognizable offence, or against whom a
reasonable complaint has been made, or credible information has been
received, or a reasonable suspicion exists, of his having been so concerned;
or
(b) who has in his possession without lawful excuse, the burden of proving
which excuse shall lie on such person, any implement of house-breaking; or
(c) who has been proclaimed as an offender either under this Code or by
order of the State Government; or
(d) in whose possession anything is found which may reasonably be suspected
to be stolen property and who may reasonably be suspected of having
committed an offence with reference to such thing; or
(e) who obstructs a police officer while in the execution of his duty, or
who has escaped, or attempts to escape, from lawful custody; or
(f) who is reasonably suspected of being a deserter from any of the Armed
Forces of the Union; or
(g) who has been concerned in, or against whom a reasonable complaint has
been made, or credible information has been received, or a reasonable
suspicion exists, of his having been concerned in, any act committed at any
place out of India which, if committed in India, would have been punishable
as an offence, and for which he is, under any law relating to extradition,
or otherwise, liable to be apprehended or detained in custody in India; or
(h) who, being a released convict, commits a breach of any rule made under
sub-section (5) of section 356; or
(I) for whose arrest any requisition, whether written or oral, has been
received from another police officer, provided that the requisition
specifies the person to be arrested and the offence or other cause for which
the arrest is to be made and it appears therefrom that the person might
lawfully be arrested without a warrant by the officer who issued the
requisition.
(2) Any officer in charge of a police station may, in like manner, arrest or
cause to be arrested any person, belonging to one or more of the categories
of persons specified in section 109 or section 110.
42.Arrest on refusal to give name and residence.- (1) When any person
who, in the presence of a police officer, has committed or has been accused
of committing a non-cognizable offence refuses, on demand of such officer,
to give his name and residence or gives a name or residence which such
officer has reason to believe to be false, he may be arrested by such
officer in order that his name or residence may be ascertained.
(2) When the true name and residence of such person have been ascertained,
he shall be released on his executing a bond, with or without sureties, to
appear before a Magistrate if so required:
Provided that, if such person is not resident in India, the bond shall be
secured by a surety or sureties resident in India.
(4) (3) Should the true name and residence of such person not be ascertained
within twenty-four hours from the time of arrest or should he fail to
execute the bond, or, if so required, to furnish sufficient sureties, he
shall forthwith be forwarded to the nearest Magistrate having jurisdiction.
43.Arrest by Private person and procedure on such arrest.- (1) Any
private person may arrest or cause to be arrested any person who in his
presence commits a non-bailable and cognizable offence, or any proclaimed
offender, and, without unnecessary delay, shall make over or cause to be
made over any person so arrested to a police officer, or, in the absence of
a police officer, take such person or cause him to be taken in custody to
the nearest police station.
(2) If there is reason to believe that such person comes under the
provisions of section 41, a police officer shall re-arrest him.
(3) If there is reason to believe that he has committed a non-cognizable
offence, and he refuses on the demand of a police officer to give his name
and residence, or gives a name or residence which such officer has reason to
believe to be false, he shall be dealt with under the provisions of section
42; but if there is no sufficient reason to believe that he has committed
any offence, he shall be at once released.
44.Arrest by Magistrate.- (1) When any offence is committed in the
presence of a Magistrate, whether Executive or Judicial, within his local
jurisdiction, he may himself arrest or order any person to arrest the
offender, and may thereupon, subject to the provisions herein contained as
to bail, commit the offender to custody.
(2) Any Magistrate, whether Executive or Judicial, may at any time arrest or
direct the arrest, in his presence, within his local jurisdiction, of any
person for whose arrest he is competent at the time and in the circumstances
to issue a warrant.
45.Protection of members of the Armed Forces from arrest.- (1)
Notwithstanding anything contained in sections 41 to 44 (both inclusive), no
member of the Armed Forces of the Union shall be arrested for anything done
or purported to be done by him in the discharge of his official duties
except after obtaining the consent of the Central Government.
(2) The State Government may, by notification, direct that the provisions of
sub-section (1) shall apply to such class or category of the members of the
Force charged with the maintenance of public order as may be specified
therein, wherever they may be serving, and thereupon the provisions of that
sub-section shall apply as if for the expression "Central Government"
occurring therein, the expression "State Government" were substituted.
46.Arrest how made.- (1) In making an arrest the police officer or
other person making the same shall actually touch or confine the body of the
person to be arrested, unless there be a submission to the custody by word
or action.
(2) If such person forcibly resists the endeavour to arrest him, or attempts
to evade the arrest, such police officer or other person may use all means
necessary to effect the arrest.
(3) Nothing in this section gives a right to cause the death of a person who
is not accused of an offence punishable with death or with imprisonment for
life.
47.Search of place entered by person sought to be arrested.- (1) If
any person acting under a warrant of arrest, or any police officer having
authority to arrest, has reason to believe that the person to be arrested
has entered into, or is within, any place, any person residing in, or being
in charge of, such place shall, on demand of such person acting as aforesaid
or such police officer, allow him free ingress thereto, and afford all
reasonable facilities for a search therein.
(2) If ingress to such place cannot be obtained under sub-section (1), it
shall be lawful in any case for a person acting under a warrant and in any
case in which a warrant may issue, but cannot be obtained without affording
the person to be arrested an opportunity of escape, for a police officer to
enter such place and search therein, and in order to effect an entrance into
such place, to break open any outer or inner door or window of any house or
place, whether that of the person to be arrested or of any other person, if
after notification of his authority and purpose, and demand of admittance
duly made, he cannot otherwise obtain admittance;
Provided that, if any such place is an apartment in the actual occupancy of
a female (not being the person to be arrested) who, according to custom,
does not appear in public, such person or police officer shall, before
entering such apartment, give notice to such female that she is at liberty
to withdraw and shall afford her every reasonable facility for withdrawing,
and may then break open the apartment and enter it.
(3) Any police officer or other person authorised to make an arrest may
break open any outer or inner door or window of any house or place in order
to liberate himself or any other person who, having lawfully entered for the
purpose of making an arrest, is detained therein.
48.Pursuit of offenders into other jurisdictions.- A police officer
may, for the purpose of arresting without warrant any person whom he is
authorised to arrest, pursue such person into any place in India.
49.No unnecessary restraint.- The Person arrested shall not be
subjected to more restraint than is necessary to prevent his escape.
50.Person arrested to be informed of grounds of arrest and of right to
bail.- (1) Every police officer or other person arresting any person
without warrant shall forthwith communicate to him full particulars of the
offence for which he is arrested or other grounds for such arrest.
(2) Where a police officer arrests without warrant any person other than a
person accused of a non-bailable offence, he shall inform the person
arrested that he is entitled to be released on bail and that he may arrange
for sureties on his behalf.
51.Search of arrested person.- (1) Whenever a person is arrested by a
police officer under a warrant which does not provide for the taking of
bail, or under a warrant which provides for the taking of bail but the
person arrested cannot furnish bail, and
whenever a person is arrested without warrant, or by a private person under
a warrant, and cannot legally be admitted to bail, or is unable to furnish
bail, the officer making the arrest or, when the arrest is made by a private
person, the police officer to whom he makes over the person arrested, may
search such person, and place in safe custody all articles, other, than
necessary wearing-apparel, found upon him and where any article is seized
from the arrested person, a receipt showing the articles taken in possession
by the police officer shall be given to such person.
(2) Whenever it is necessary to cause a female to be searched, the search
shall be made by another female with strict regard to decency.
52.Power to seize offensive weapons.-The officer or other person
making any arrest under this Code may take from the person arrested any
offensive weapons which he has about his person, and shall deliver all
weapons so taken to the Court or officer before which or whom the officer or
person making the arrest is required by this Code to produce the person
arrested.
53.Examination of accused by medical practitioner at the request of
police officer.- (1) When a person is arrested on a charge of committing
an offence of such a nature and alleged to have been committed under such
circumstances that there are reasonable grounds for believing that an
examination of his person will afford evidence as to the commission of an
offence, it shall be lawful for a registered medical practitioner, acting at
the request of a police officer not below the rank of sub-inspector, and for
any person acting in good faith in his aid and under his direction, to make
such an examination of the person arrested as is reasonably necessary in
order to ascertain the facts which may afford such evidence, and to use such
force as is reasonably necessary for that purpose.
(2) Whenever the person of a female is to be examined under this section,
the examination shall be made only by, or under the supervision of, a female
registered medical practitioner.
Explanation.- In this section and in section 54, "registered medical
practitioner" means a medical practitioner who possesses any recognized
medical qualification as defined in clause (h) of section 2 of the Indian
Medical Council Act, 1956,(102 of 1956) and whose name has been entered in a
State Medical Register.
54.Examination of arrested person by medical practitioner at the request
of the arrested person.- When a person who is arrested, whether on a
charge or otherwise, alleges, at the time when he is produced before a
Magistrate or at any time during the period of his detention in custody that
the examination of his body will afford evidence which will disprove the
commission by him of any offence or which will establish the commission by
any other person of any offence against his body, the Magistrate shall, if
requested by the arrested person so to do direct the examination of the body
of such person by a registered medical practitioner unless the Magistrate
considers that the request is made for the purpose of vexation or delay or
for defeating the ends of justice.
55.Procedure when police officer deputes subordinate to arrest without
warrant.- (1) When any officer in charge of a police station or any
police officer making an investigation under Chapter XII requires any
officer subordinate to him to arrest without a warrant (otherwise than in
his presence) any person who may lawfully be arrested without a warrant, he
shall deliver to the officer required to make the arrest an order in
writing, specifying the person to be arrested and the offence or other cause
for which the arrest is to be made and the officer so required shall, before
making the arrest, notify to the person to be arrested the substance of the
order and, if so required by such person, shall show him the order.
(2) Nothing in sub-section (1) shall affect the power of a police officer to
arrest a person under section 41.
56.Person arrested to be taken before Magistrate or officer in charge of
police station.- A police officer making an arrest without warrant
shall, without unnecessary delay and subject to the provisions herein
contained as to bail, take or send the person arrested before a Magistrate
having jurisdiction in the case, or before the officer in charge of a police
station.
57.Person arrested not to be detained more than twenty-four hours.-
No police officer shall detail in custody a person arrested without warrant
for a longer period than under all the circumstances of the case is
reasonable, and such period shall not, in the absence of a special order of
a Magistrate under section 167, exceed twenty-four hours exclusive of the
time necessary for the journey from the place of arrest to the Magistrate's
Court.
58.Police to report apprehensions.- Officers in charge of police
stations shall report to the District Magistrate, or, if he so directs, to
the Sub-divisional Magistrate, the cases of all persons arrested without
warrant, within the limits of their respective stations, whether such
persons have been admitted to bail or otherwise.
59.Discharge of person apprehended.- No person who has been arrested
by a police officer shall be discharged except on his own bond, or on bail,
or under the special order of a Magistrate.
60.Power, on escape, to pursue and retake.-(1) If a person in lawful
custody escapes or is rescued, the person from whose custody he escaped or
was rescued may immediately pursue and arrest him in any place in India.
(2) The provisions of section 47 shall apply to arrests under sub-section
(1) although the person making any such arrest is not acting under a warrant
and is not a police officer having authority to arrest.
CHAPTER VI
PROCESSES TO COMPEL APPEARANCE
A.- Summons
61.Form of summons.- Every summons issued by a Court under this Code
shall be in writing, in duplicate, signed by the presiding officer of such
Court or by such other officer as the High Court may, from time to time, by
rule direct, and shall bear the seal of the Court.
62.Summons how served.- (1) Every summons shall be served by a police
officer, or subject to such rules as the State Government may make in this
behalf, by an officer of the Court issuing it or other public servant.
(2) The summons shall, if practicable, be served personally on the person
summoned, by delivering or tendering to him one of the duplicates of the
summons.
(3) Every person on whom a summons is so served shall, if so required by the
serving officer, sign a receipt therefor on the back of the other duplicate.
63.Service of summons on corporate bodies and societies.- Service of
a summons on a corporation may be effected by serving it on the secretary,
local manager or other principle officer of the corporation, or by letter
sent by registered post, addressed to the chief officer of the corporation
in India, in which case the service shall be deemed to have been effected
when the letter would arrive in ordinary course of post.
Explanation.- In this section, "corporation" means an incorporated company
or other body corporate and includes a society registered under the
Societies Registration Act, 1860.
64.Service when persons summoned cannot be found.- Where the person
summoned cannot, by the exercise of due diligence, be found, the summons may
be served by leaving one of the duplicates for him with some adult male
member of his family residing with him, and the person with whom the summons
is so left shall, if so required by the serving officer, sign a receipt
therefor on the back of the other duplicate.
Explanation.- A servant is not a member of the family within the meaning of
this section.
65.Procedure when service cannot be effected as before provided.- If
service cannot by the exercise of due diligence be effected as provided in
section 62, section 63 or section 64, the serving officer shall affix one of
the duplicates of the summons to some conspicuous part of the house or
homestead in which the person summoned ordinarily resides; and thereupon the
Court, after making such inquiries as it thinks fit, may either declare that
the summons has been duly served or order fresh service in such manner as it
considers proper.
66.Service on Government.- (1) Where the person summoned is in the
active service of the Government, the Court issuing the summons shall
ordinarily sent it in duplicate to the head of the office in which such
person is employed; and such head shall thereupon cause the summons to be
served in the manner provided by section 62, and shall return it to the
Court under his signature with the endorsement required by that section.
(2) Such signature shall be evidence of due service.
67.Service of summons outside local limits.-When a Court desires that
a summons issued by it shall be served at any place outside its local
jurisdiction, it shall ordinarily send such summons in duplicate to a
Magistrate within whose local jurisdiction the person summoned resides, or
is, to be there served.
68.Proof of service in such cases and when serving officer not present.-(1)
When a summons issued by a Court is served outside its local jurisdiction,
and in any case where the officer who has served a summons is not present at
the hearing of the case, an affidavit, purporting to be made before a
Magistrate, that such summons has been served, and a duplicate of the
summons purporting to be endorsed (in the manner provided by section 62 or
section 64) by the person to whom it was delivered or tendered or with whom
it was left, shall be admissible in evidence, and the statements made
therein shall be deemed to be correct unless and until the contrary is
proved.
(2) The affidavit mentioned in this section may be attached to the duplicate
of the summons are returned to the Court.
69.Service of summons on witness by post.- (1) Notwithstanding
anything contained in the preceding sections of this Chapter, a Court
issuing a summons to a witness may, in addition to and simultaneously with
the issue of such summons, direct a copy of the summons to be served by
registered post addressed to the witness at the place where he ordinarily
resides or carries on business or personally works for gain.
(2) When an acknowledgment purporting to be signed by the witness or an
endorsement purporting to be made by a postal employee that the witness
refused to take delivery of the summons has been received, the Court issuing
the summons may declare that the summons has been duly served.
B.- Warrant of arrest
70.Form of warrant of arrest and duration.- (1) Every warrant of
arrest issued by a Court under this Code shall be in writing, signed by the
presiding officer of such Court and shall bear the seal of the Court.
(2) Every such warrant shall remain in force until it is cancelled by the
Court which issued it, or until it is executed.
71.Power to direct security to be taken.- (1) Any Court issuing a
warrant for the arrest of any person may in its discretion direct by
endorsement on the warrant that, if such person executes a bond with
sufficient sureties for his attendance before the Court at a specified time
and thereafter until otherwise directed by the Court, the officer to whom
the warrant is directed shall take such security and shall release such
person from custody.
(2) The endorsement shall state-
(a) the number of sureties;
(b) the amount in which they and the person for whose arrest the warrant is
issued, are be respectively bound;
(c) the time at which he is to attend before the Court.
(3) Whenever security is taken under this section, the officer to whom the
warrant is directed shall forward the bond to the Court.
72.Warrants to whom directed.- (1) A warrant of arrest shall
ordinarily be directed to one or more police officers; but the Court issuing
such a warrant may, if its immediate execution is necessary and no police
officer is immediately available, direct it to any other person or persons,
and such person or persons shall execute the same.
(2) When a warrant is directed to more officers or persons than one, it may
be executed by all, or by any one or more of them.
73.Warrant may be directed to any person.- (1) The Chief Judicial
Magistrate or a Magistrate of the first class may direct a warrant to any
person within his local jurisdiction for the arrest of any escaped convict,
proclaimed offender or of any person who is accused of a non-bailable
offence and is evading arrest.
(2) Such person shall acknowledge in writing the receipt of the warrant, and
shall execute it if the person for whose arrest it was issued, is in, or
enters on, any land or other property under his charge.
(3) When the person against whom such warrant is issued is arrested, he
shall be made over with the warrant to the nearest police officer, who shall
cause him to be taken before a Magistrate having jurisdiction in the case,
unless security is taken under section 71.
74.Warrant directed to police officer.- A warrant directed to any
police officer may also be executed by any other police officer whose name
is endorsed upon the warrant by the officer to whom it is directed or
endorsed.
75.Notification of substance of warrant.-The police officer or other
person executing a warrant of arrest shall notify the substance thereof to
the person to be arrested, and, if so required, shall show him the warrant.
76.Person arrested to be brought before Court without delay.- The
police officer or other person executing a warrant of arrest shall (subject
to the provisions of section 71 as to security) without unnecessary delay
bring the person arrested before the Court before which he is required by
law to produce such person:
Provided that such delay shall not, in any case, exceed twenty-four hours
exclusive of the time necessary for the journey from the place of arrest to
the Magistrate's Court.
77.Where warrant may be executed.- A warrant of arrest may be
executed at any place in India.
78.Warrant forwarded for execution outside jurisdiction.- (1) When a
warrant is to be executed outside the local jurisdiction of the Court
issuing it, such Court may, instead of directing the warrant to a police
officer within its jurisdiction, forward it by post or otherwise to any
Executive Magistrate or District Superintendent of Police or Commissioner of
Police within the local limits of whose jurisdiction it is to be executed;
and the Executive Magistrate or District Superintendent or Commissioner
shall endorse his name thereon, and if practicable, cause it to be executed
in the manner herein before provided.
(2) The Court issuing a warrant under sub-section (1) shall forward, along
with the warrant, the substance of the information against the person to be
arrested together with such documents, if any, as may be sufficient to
enable the Court acting under section 81 to decide whether bail should or
should not be granted to the person.
79.Warrant directed to police officer for execution outside jurisdiction.-
(1) When a warrant directed to a police officer is to be executed beyond the
local jurisdiction of the Court issuing the same, he shall ordinarily take
it for endorsement either to an Executive Magistrate or to a police officer
not below the rank of an officer in charge of a police station, within the
local limits of whose jurisdiction the warrant is to be executed.
(2) Such Magistrate or police officer shall endorse his name thereon and
such endorsement shall be sufficient authority to the police officer to whom
the warrant is directed to execute the same, and the local police shall, if
so required, assist such officer in executing such warrant.
(3)Whenever there is reason to believe that the delay occasioned by
obtaining the endorsement of the Magistrate or police officer within whose
local jurisdiction the warrant is to be executed will prevent such
execution, the police officer to whom it is directed may execute the same
without such endorsement in any place beyond the local jurisdiction of the
Court which issued it.
80.Procedure on arrest of person against whom warrant issued.- When a
warrant of arrest is executed outside the district in which it was issued,
the person arrested shall, unless the Court which issued the warrant is
within thirty kilometres of the place of arrest or is nearer than the
Executive Magistrate or District Superintendent of Police or Commissioner of
Police within the local limits of whose jurisdiction the arrest was made, or
unless security is taken under section 71, be taken before such Magistrate
or District Superintendent or Commissioner.
81.Procedure by Magistrate before whom such person arrested is brought.-
(1) The Executive Magistrate or District Superintendent of Police or
Commissioner of Police shall, if the person arrested appears to be the
person intended by the Court which issued the warrant, direct his removal in
custody to such Court:
Provided that, if the offence is bailable, and such person is already and
willing to give bail to the satisfaction of such Magistrate, District
Superintendent or Commissioner, or a direction has been endorsed under
section 71 on the warrant and such person is ready and willing to give the
security required by such direction, the Magistrate, District Superintendent
or Commissioner shall take such bail or security, as the case may be, and
forward the bond, to the Court which issued the warrant:
Provided further that if the offence is a non-bailable one, it shall be
lawful for the Chief Judicial Magistrate (subject to the provisions of
section 437), or the Sessions Judge, of the district in which the arrest is
made on consideration of the information and the documents referred to in
sub-section (2) of section 78, to release such person on bail.
(2) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to prevent a police officer from
taking security under section 71.
C.- Proclamation and attachment
82.Proclamation for person absconding.- (1) If any Court has reason
to believe (whether after taking evidence or not) that any person against
whom a warrant has been issued by it has absconded or is concealing himself
so that such warrant cannot be executed, such Court may public a written
proclamation requiring him to appear at a specified place and at a specified
time not less than thirty days from the date of publishing such
proclamation.
(2) The proclamation shall be published as follows:-
(i) (a) it shall be publicly read in some conspicuous place of the town or
village in which such person ordinarily resides;
(b) it shall be affixed to some conspicuous part of the house or homestead
in which such
person ordinarily resides or to some conspicuous place of such town or
village;
(c) a copy thereof shall be affixed to some conspicuous part of the
Court-house;
(ii) the Court may also, if it thinks fit, direct a copy of the proclamation
to be published in a daily newspaper circulating in the place in which such
person ordinarily resides.
(3) A statement in writing by the Court issuing the proclamation to the
effect that the proclamation was duly published on a specified day, in the
manner specified in clause (I) of sub-section (2), shall be conclusive
evidence that the requirements of this section have been complied with, and
that the proclamation was published on such day.
83.Attachment of property of person absconding.- (1) The Court
issuing a proclamation under section 82 may, for reasons to be recorded in
writing, at any time after the issue of the proclamation, order the
attachment of any property, movable or immovable, or both, belonging to the
proclaimed person:
Provided that where at the time of the issue of the proclamation the Court
is satisfied, by affidavit or otherwise that the person in relation to whom
the proclamation is to be issued, -
(a) is about to dispose of the whole or any part of his property, or
(b) is about to remove the whole or any part of his property from the local
jurisdiction
of the Court,
it may order the attachment simultaneously with the issue of the
proclamation.
(2) Such order shall authorise the attachment of any property belonging to
such person within the district in which it is made; and it shall authorise
the attachment of any property belonging to such person without such
district when endorsed by the District Magistrate within whose district such
property is situate.
(3) If the property ordered to be attached is a debt or other movable
property, the attachment under this section shall be made-
(a) by seizure; or
(b) by the appointment of a receiver; or
(c) by an order in writing prohibiting the delivery of such property to the
proclaimed person or to any one on his behalf; on
(d) by all or any two of such methods, as the Court thinks fit.
(4) If the property ordered to be attached is immovable, the attachment
under this section shall, in the case of land paying revenue to the State
Government, be made through the Collector of the district in which the land
is situate, and in all other cases-
(a) by taking possession; or
(b) by the appointment of a receiver; or
(c) by an order in writing prohibiting the payment of rent on delivery of
property to
the proclaimed person or to any one on his behalf; or
(d) by all or any two of such methods, as the Court thinks fit.
(5) If the property ordered to be attached consists of live-stock or is of a
perishable nature, the Court may, if it thinks it expedient, order immediate
sale thereof, and in such case the proceeds of the sale shall abide the
order of the Court.
(6) The powers, duties and liabilities of a receiver appointed under this
section shall be the same as those of a receiver appointed under the Code of
Civil Procedure, 1908(5 of 1908).
84.Claims and objections to attachment.- (1) If any claim is
preferred to, or objection made to the attachment of, any property attached
under section 83, within six months from the date of such attachment, by any
person other than the proclaimed person, on the ground that the claimant or
objector has an interest in such property, and that such interest is not
liable to attachment under section 83, the claim or objection shall be
inquired into, and may be allowed or disallowed in whole or in part:
Provided that any claim preferred or objection made within the period
allowed by this sub-section may, in the event of the death of the claimant
or objector, be continued by his legal representative.
(2) Claims or objections under sub-section (1) may be preferred or made in
the Court by which the order of attachment is issued, or, if the claim or
objection is in respect of property attached under an order endorsed under
sub-section (2) of section 83, in the Court of the Chief Judicial Magistrate
of the district in which the attachment is made.
(3) Every such claim or objection shall be inquired into by the Court in
which it is preferred or made:
Provided that, if it is preferred or made in the Court of a Chief Judicial
Magistrate, he may make it over for disposal to any Magistrate subordinate
to him.
(4) Any person whose claim or objection has been disallowed in whole or in
part by an order under sub-section (1) may, within a period of one year from
the date of such order, institute a suit to establish the right which he
claims in respect of the property in dispute; but subject to the result of
such suit, if any, the order shall be conclusive.
85.Release, sale and restoration of attached property.-(1) If the
proclaimed person appears within the time specified in the proclamation, the
Court shall make an order releasing the property from the attachment.
(2) If the proclaimed person does not appear within the time specified in
the proclamation, the property under the attachment shall be at the disposal
of the State Government; but it shall not be sold until the expiration of
six months from the date of the attachment and until any claim preferred or
objection made under section 84 has been disposed of under that section,
unless it is subject to speedy and natural decay, or the Court considers
that the sale would be for the benefit of the owner; in either of which
cases the Court may cause it to be sold whenever it thinks fit.
(3) If, within two years from the date of the attachment, any person whose
property is or has been at the disposal of the State Government, under
sub-section (2), appears voluntarily or is apprehended and brought before
the Court by whose order the property was attached, or the Court to which
such Court is subordinate, and proves to the satisfaction of such Court that
he did not abscond or conceal himself for the purpose of avoiding execution
of the warrant, and that he had not such notice of the proclamation as to
enable him to attend within the time specified therein such property, or, if
the same has been sold, the net proceeds of the sale, or, if part only
thereof has been sold, the net proceeds of the sale, and the residue of the
property, shall, after satisfying therefrom all costs incurred in
consequence of the attachment, be delivered to him.
86.Appeal from order rejecting application for restoration of attached
property.- Any person referred to in sub-section (3) of section 85, who
is aggrieved by any refusal to deliver property or the proceeds of the sale
thereof may appeal to the Court to which appeals ordinarily lie from the
sentences of the first-mentioned Court.
D.- Other rules regarding processes
87.Issue of warrant in lieu of, or in addition to, summons.- A Court
may, in any case in which it is empowered by this Code to issue a summons
for the appearance of any person, issue, after recording its reasons in
writing, a warrant for his arrest-
(a) if, either before the issue of such summons, or after the issue of the
same but before the time fixed for his appearance, the Court sees reason to
believe that he has absconded or will not obey the summons; or
(b) if at such time he fails to appear and the summons is proved to have
been duly served in time to admit of his appearing in accordance therewith
and no reasonable excuse is offered for such failure.
88.Power to take bond for appearance.- When any person for whose
appearance or arrest the officer presiding in any Court is empowered to
issue a summons or warrant, is present in such Court, such officer may
require such person to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for his
appearance in such Court, or any other Court to which the case may be
transferred for trial.
89.Arrest on breach of bond for appearance.- When any person who is
bound by any bond taken under this Code to appear before a Court, does not
appear, the officer presiding in such Court may issue a warrant directing
that such person be arrested and produced before him.
90.Provisions of this Chapter generally applicable to summonses and
warrants of arrest.- The provisions contained in this Chapter relating
to a summons and warrant, and their issue, service and execution, shall, so
far as may be, apply to every summons and every warrant of arrest issued
under this Code.
CHAPTER VII
PROCESSES TO COMPEL THE PRODUCTION OF THINGS
A.- Summons to
produce
91.Summons to produce document or other thing.-
(1) Whenever any Court or any officer in charge of a police station
considers that the production of any document or other thing is necessary or
desirable for the purposes of any investigation, inquiry, trial or other
proceeding under this Code by or before such Court or officer, such Court
may issue a summons, or such officer a written order, to the person in whose
possession or power such document or thing is believed to be, requiring him
to attend and produce it, or to produce it, at the time and place stated in
the summons or order.
(2) Any person required under this section merely to produce a document or
other thing shall be deemed to have complied with the requisition if he
causes such document or thing to be produced instead of attending personally
to produce the same.
(3) Nothing in this section shall be deemed-
(a) to affect sections 123 and 124 of the Indian Evidence Act, 1872,(1 of
1872) or the Bankers' Books Evidence Act, 1891,(13 of 1891) or
(b) to apply to a letter, postcard, telegram, or other document or any
parcel or thing in the custody of the postal or telegraph authority.
92.Procedure as to letters and telegrams.-(1) If any document, parcel
or thing in the custody of a postal or telegraph authority is, in the
opinion of the District Magistrate, Chief Judicial Magistrate, Court of
Session or High Court wanted for the purpose of any investigation, inquiry,
trial or other proceeding under this Code, such Magistrate or Court may
require the postal or telegraph authority, as the case may be, to deliver
the document, parcel or thing to such person as the Magistrate or Court
directs.
(2) If any such document, parcel or thing is, in the opinion of any other
Magistrate, whether Executive or Judicial, or of any Commissioner of Police
or District Superintendent of Police, wanted for any such purpose, he may
require the postal or telegraph authority, as the case may be, to cause
search to be made for and to detain such document, parcel or thing pending
the order of a District Magistrate, Chief Judicial Magistrate or Court under
sub-section (1).
B.- Search-warrants
93.When search warrant may be issued.- (1) (a) Where any Court has
reason to believe that a person to whom a summons or order under section 91
or a requisition under sub-section (1) of section 92 has been, or might be,
addressed, will not or would not produce the document or thing as required
by such summons or requisition, or
(b) where such document or thing is not known to the Court to be in the
possession of any person, or
(c) where the Court considers that the purposes of any inquiry, trial or
other proceeding under this Code will be served by a general search or
inspection,
it may issue a search-warrant; and the person to whom such warrant is
directed, may search or inspect in accordance therewith and the provisions
hereinafter contained.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, specify in the warrant the particular
place or part thereof to which only the search or inspection shall extend;
and the person charged with the execution of such warrant shall then search
or inspect only the place or part so specified.
(3) Nothing contained in this section shall authorise any Magistrate other
than a District Magistrate or Chief Judicial Magistrate to grant a warrant
to search for a document, parcel or other thing in the custody of the postal
or telegraph authority.
94.Search of place suspected to contain stolen property forged documents
etc.- (1) If a 'District Magistrate, Sub-divisional Magistrate or
Magistrate of the first class, upon information and after such inquiry as he
thinks necessary, has reason to believe that any place is used for the
deposit or sale of stolen property, or for the deposit, sale or production
of any objectionable article to which this section applies, or that any such
objectionable article is deposited in any place, he may by warrant authorise
any police officer above the rank of a constable-
(a) to enter, with such assistance as may be required, such place,
(b) to search the same in the manner specified in the warrant,
(c) to take possession of any property or article therein found which he
reasonably
suspects to be stolen property or objectionable article to which this
section applies,
(d) to convey such property or article before a Magistrate, or to guard the
same on the
spot until the offender is taken before a Magistrate, or otherwise to
dispose of it in
some place of safety,
(e) to take into custody and carry before a Magistrate every person found in
such
place who appears to have been privy to the deposit, sale or production of
any such
property or article knowing or having reasonable cause to suspect it to be
stolen
property or, as the case may be, objectionable article to which this section
applies.
(2) The objectionable articles to which this section applies are -
(a) counterfeit coin;
(b) pieces of metal made in contravention of the Metal Tokens Act, 1889,(1
of 1899) or brought into India in contravention of any notification for the
time being in force under section 11 of the Customs Act, 1962(52 of 1962);
(c) counterfeit currency note; counterfeit stamps;
(d) forged documents;
(e) false seals;
(f) obscene objects referred to in section 292 of the Indian Penal Code(45
of 1860);
(g) instruments or materials used for the production of any of the articles
mentioned
in clauses (a) to (f).
95.Power to declare certain publications forfeited and to issue
search-warrants for the same.- (1) Where -
(a) any newspaper, or book, or
(b) any document,
wherever printed, appears to the State Government to contain any matter the
publication of which is punishable under section 124A or section 153A or
section 153B or section 292 or section 293 or section 295A of the Indian
Penal Code, the State Government may, by notification, stating the grounds
of its opinion, declare every copy of the issue of the newspaper containing
such matter, and every copy of such book or other document to be forfeited
to Government, and thereupon any police officer may seize the same wherever
found in India and any Magistrate may by warrant authorise any police
officer not below the rank of sub-inspector to enter upon and search for the
same in any premises where any copy of such issue or any such book or other
document may be or may be reasonably suspected to be.
(2) In this section and in section 96, -
(a) "newspaper" and "book" have the same meaning as in the Press and
Registration of
Books Act, 1867(25 of 1867);
(b) "document" includes any painting, drawing or photograph, or other
visible
representation.
(3) No order passed or action taken under this section shall be called in
question in any Court otherwise than in accordance with the provisions of
section 96.
96.Application to High Court to set aside declaration of forfeiture.-
(1) Any person having any interest in any newspaper, book or other document,
in respect of which a declaration of forfeiture has been made under section
95, may, within two months from the date of publication in the Official
Gazette of such declaration, apply to the High Court to set aside such
declaration on the ground that the issue of the newspaper, or the book or
other document, in respect of which the declaration was made, did not
contain any such matter as is referred to in sub-section (1) of section 95.
(2) Every such application shall, where the High Court consists of three or
more Judges, be heard and determined by a Special Bench of the High Court
composed of three Judges and where the High Court consists of less than
three Judges, such Special Bench shall be composed of all the Judges of that
High Court.
(3) On the hearing of any such application with reference to any newspaper,
any copy of such newspaper may be given in evidence in aid of the proof of
the nature or tendency of the words, signs or visible representations
contained in such newspaper, in respect of which the declaration of
forfeiture was made.
(4) The High Court shall, if it is not satisfied that the issue of the
newspaper, or the book or other document, in respect of which the
application has been made, contained any such matter as is referred to in
sub-section (1) of section 95, set aside the declaration of forfeiture.
(5) Where there is a difference of opinion among the Judges forming the
Special Bench, the decision shall be in accordance with the opinion of the
majority of those Judges.
97.Search for persons wrongfully confined.- If any District
Magistrate, Sub-divisional Magistrate or Magistrate of the first class has
reason to believe that any person is confined under such circumstances that
the confinement amounts to an offence, he may issue la search-warrant, and
the person to whom such warrant is directed may search for the person so
confined; and such search shall be made in accordance therewith, and the
person, if found, shall be immediately taken before a Magistrate, who shall
make such order as in the circumstances of the case seems proper.
98.Power to compel restoration of abducted females.- Upon complaint
made on oath of the abduction or unlawful detention of a woman, or a female
child under the age of eighteen years, for any unlawful purpose, a District
Magistrate, Sub-divisional Magistrate or Magistrate of the first class may
make an order for the immediate restoration of such woman to her liberty, or
of such female child to her husband, present, guardian or other person
having the lawful charge of such child, and may compel compliance with such
order, using such force as may be necessary.
C.General provisions relating to searches
99.Direction, etc., of search-warrants.- The provisions of sections 38,
70, 72, 74, 77, 78 and 79 shall, so far as may be, apply to all
search-warrants issued under section 93, section 94, section 95 or section
97.
100.Persons in charge of closed place to allow search.- (1) Whenever
any place liable to search or inspection under this Chapter is closed, any
person residing in, or being in charge of, such place, shall, on demand of
the officer or other person executing the warrant, and on production of the
warrant, allow his free ingress thereto, and afford all reasonable
facilities for a search therein.
(2) If ingress into such place cannot be so obtained, the officer or other
person executing the warrant may proceed in the manner provided by
sub-section (2) of section 47.
(3) Where any person in or about such place is reasonably suspected of
concealing about his person any article for which search should be made,
such person may be searched and if such person is a woman, the search shall
be made by another woman with strict regard to decency.
(4) Before making a search under this Chapter, the officer or other person
about to make it shall call upon two or more independent and respectable
inhabitants of the locality in which the place to be searched is situate or
of any other locality if no such inhabitant of the said locality is
available or is willing to be a witness to the search, to attend and witness
the search and may issue an order in writing to them or any of them so to
do.
(5) The search shall be made in their presence, and a list of all things
seized in the course of such search and of the places in which they are
respectively found shall be prepared by such officer or other person and
signed by such witnesses; but no person witnessing a search under this
section shall be required to attend the Court as a witness of the search
unless specially summoned by it.
(6) The occupant of the place searched, or some person in his behalf, shall,
in every instance, be permitted to attend during the search, and a copy of
the list prepared under this section, signed by the said witnesses, shall be
delivered to such occupant or person.
(7) When any person is searched under sub-section (3), a list of all things
taken possession of shall be prepared, and a copy thereof shall be delivered
to such person.
(8) Any person who, without reasonable cause, refuses or neglects to attend
and witness a search under this section, when called upon to do so by an
order in writing delivered or tendered to him, shall be deemed to have
committed an offence under section 187 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860).
101.Disposal of things found in search beyond jurisdiction.-When, in
the execution of a search-warrant at any place beyond the local jurisdiction
of the Court which issued the same, any of the things for which search is
made, are found, such things, together with the list of the same prepared
under the provisions hereinafter contained, shall be immediately taken
before the Court issuing the warrant, unless such place is nearer to the
Magistrate having jurisdiction therein than to such Court, in which case the
list and things shall be immediately taken before such Magistrate; and,
unless there be good cause to the contrary, such Magistrate shall make an
order authorising them to be taken to such Court.
D.- Miscellaneous
102.Power of police officer to seize certain property.- (1) Any police
officer may seize any property which may be alleged or suspected to have
been stolen, or which may be found under circumstances which create
suspicion of the commission of any offence.
(2) Such police officer, if subordinate to the officer in charge of a police
station, shall forthwith report the seizure to that officer.
103.Magistrate may direct search in his presence.- Any Magistrate may
direct a search to be made in his presence of any place for the search of
which he is competent to issue a search-warrant.
104.Power to impound document, etc., produced.- Any Court may, if it
thinks fit, impound any document or thing produced before it under this
Code.
105.Reciprocal arrangements regarding processes.- (1) Where a Court
in the territories to which this Code extends (hereafter in this section
referred to as the said territories) desires that -
(a) a summons to an accused person, or
(b) a warrant for the arrest of an accused person, or
(c) a summons to any person requiring him to attend and produce a document
or other
thing, or to produce it, or
(d) a search-warrant,
issued by it shall be served or executed at any place within the local
jurisdiction of a Court in any State or area in India outside the said
territories, it may send such summons or warrant in duplicate by post or
otherwise, to the presiding officer of that Court to be served or executed;
and where any summons referred to in clause (a) or clause (c) has been so
served, the provisions of section 68 shall apply in relation to such summons
as if the presiding officer of the Court to whom it is sent were a
Magistrate in the said territories.
(2) Where a Court in the said territories has received for service or
execution-
(a) a summons to an accused person, or
(b) a warrant for the arrest of an accused person, or
(c) a summons to any person requiring him to attend and produce a document
or
other thing or to produce it, or
(d) a search-warrant,
issued by a Court in any State or area in India outside the said
territories, it shall cause the same to be served or executed as if it were
a summons or warrant received by it from another Court in the said
territories for service or execution within its local jurisdiction: and
where-
(i) a warrant of arrest has been executed, the person arrested shall, so far
as possible, be dealt with in accordance with the procedure prescribed by
sections 80 and 81.
(ii) a search-warrant has been executed, the things found in the search
shall, so far as possible, be dealt with in accordance with the procedure
prescribed by section 101.
CHAPTER
VIII
SECURITY FOR KEEPING THE PEACE AND FOR GOOD BEHAVIOUR
106.Security for
keeping the peace on conviction.-
(1) When a Court of Session or Court of a Magistrate of the first class
convicts a person of any of the offences specified in sub-section (2) or of
abetting any such offence and is of opinion that it is necessary to take
security from such person for keeping the peace, the Court may, at the time
of passing sentence on such person, order him to execute a bond, with or
without sureties, for keeping the peace for such period, not exceeding three
years, as it thinks fit.
(2) The offences referred to in sub-section (1) are-
(a) any offence punishable under Chapter VIII of the Indian Penal Code, (45
of 1860)
other than an offence punishable under section 153A or section 153B or
section 154 thereof;
(b) any offence which consists of, or includes, assault or using criminal
force or committing mischief;
(c) any offence of criminal intimidation;
(d) any other offence which caused, or was intended or known to be likely to
cause, a
breach of the peace.
(3) If the conviction is set aside on appeal or otherwise, the bond so
executed shall become void.
(4) An order under this section may also be made by an Appellate Court or by
a Court when exercising its powers of revision.
107.Security for keeping the peace in other cases.- (1) When an
Executive Magistrate receives information that any person is likely to
commit a breach of the peace or disturb the public tranquillity or to do any
wrongful act that may probably occasion a breach of the peace or disturb the
public tranquillity and is of opinion that there is sufficient ground for
proceeding, he may, in the manner hereinafter provided, require such person
to show cause why he should not be ordered to execute a bond, for keeping
the peace for such period, not exceeding one year, as the Magistrate thinks
fit.
(2) Proceeding under this section may be taken before any Executive
Magistrate when either the place where the breach of the peace or
disturbance is apprehended is within his local jurisdiction or there is
within such jurisdiction a person who is likely to commit a breach of the
peace or disturb the public tranquillity or to do any wrongful act as
aforesaid beyond such jurisdiction.
108.Security for good behaviour from persons disseminating seditious
matters.- (1) When a Judicial Magistrate of the first class receives
information that there is within his local jurisdiction any person who,
within or without such jurisdiction, -
(i) either orally or in writing or in any other manner, intentionally
disseminates or attempts to disseminate or abets the dissemination of, -
(a) any matter the publication of which is punishable under section 124A or
section 153A or section 153B or section 295A of the Indian Penal Code, (45
of 1860) or
(b) any matter concerning a Judge acting or purporting to act in the
discharge of his official duties which amounts to criminal intimidation or
defamation under the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860).
(ii)makes, produces, publishes or keeps for sale, imports, exports, conveys,
sells, lets to hire, distributes, publicly exhibits or in any other manner
puts into circulation any obscene matter such as is referred to in section
292 of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860)
(ii) and the Magistrate is of opinion that there is sufficient ground for
proceeding, the Magistrate may, in the manner hereinafter provided, require
such person to show cause why he should not be ordered to execute a bond,
with or without sureties, for his good behaviour for such period, not
exceeding one year, as the Magistrate thinks fit.
(2) No proceedings shall be taken under this section against the editor,
proprietor, printer or publisher of any publication registered under, and
edited, printed and published in conformity with, the rules laid down in the
Press and Registration of Books Act, 1867, (25 of 1867) with reference to
any matter contained in such publication except by the order or under the
authority of the State Government or some officer empowered by the State
Government in this behalf.
109.Security for good behaviour from suspected persons.- When a
Judicial Magistrate of the first class receives information that there is
within his local jurisdiction a person taking precautions to conceal his
presence and that there is reason to believe that he is doing so with a view
to committing a cognizable offence, the Magistrate may, in the manner
hereinafter provided, require such person to show cause why he should no the
ordered to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for his good behaviour
for such period, not exceeding one year, as the Magistrate thinks fit.
110.Security for good behaviour from habitual offenders.- When a
Judicial Magistrate of the first class receives information that there is
within his local jurisdiction a person who -
(a) is by habit a robber, house-breaker, thief, or forger, or
(b) is by habit a receiver of stolen property knowing the same to have been
stolen, or
(c) habitually protects or harbours thieves, or aids in the concealment or
disposal of stolen property, or
(d) habitually commits, or attempts to commit, or abets the commission of,
the offence of kidnapping, abduction, extortion, cheating or mischief, or
any offence punishable under Chapter XII of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of
1860) or under section 489A, section 489B, section 489C or section 489D of
that Code, or
(e) habitually commits, or attempts to commit, or abets the commission of,
offences, involving a breach of the peace, or
(f) habitually commits, or attempts to commit, or abets the commission of -
(i) any offence under one or more of the following Acts, namely:-
(a) the Drugs and Cosmetics Act, 1940 (23 of 1940);
(b) the Foreign Exchange Regulation Act, 1973 (7 of 1973);
(c) the Employees' Provident Funds and Family Pension Fund Act, 1952 (19 of
1952);
(d) the Prevention of Food Adulteration Act, 1954 (37 of 1954);
(e) the Essential Commodities Act, 1955(10 of 1955);
(f) the Untouchability (Offences ) Act, 1955 (22 of 1955);
(g) the Customs Act, 1962 (52 of 1962); or
(ii) any offence punishable under any other law providing for the prevention
of hoarding or profiteering or of adulteration of food or drugs or of
corruption, or
(g) is so desperate and dangerous as to render his being at large without
security hazardous to the community,
such Magistrate may, in the manner hereinafter provided, require such person
to show cause why he should not be ordered to execute a bond, with sureties,
for his good behaviour for such period, not exceeding three years, as the
Magistrate thinks fit.
111.Order to be made.- When a Magistrate acting under section 107,
section 108, section 109 or section 110, deems it necessary to require any
person to show cause under such section, he shall make an order in writing,
setting forth the substance of the information received, the amount of the
bond to be executed, the term for which it is to be in force, and the
number, character and class of sureties (if any) required.
112.Procedure in respect of person in Court.- If the person in
respect of whom such order is made is present in Court, it shall be read
over to him, or, if he so desires, the substance thereof shall be explained
to him.
113.Summons or warrant in case of person not so present.- If such
person is not present in Court, the Magistrate shall issue a summons
requiring him to appear, or, when such person is in custody, a warrant
directing the officer in whose custody he is to bring him before the Court;
Provided that whenever it appears to such Magistrate, upon the report of a
police officer or upon other information (the substance of which report or
information shall be recorded by the Magistrate), that there is reason to
fear the commission of a breach of the peace, and that such breach of the
peace cannot be prevented otherwise than by the immediate arrest of such
person, the Magistrate may at any time issue a warrant for his arrest.
114.Copy of order to accompany summons or warrant.- Every summons or
warrant issued under section 113, shall be accompanied by a copy of the
order made under section 111, and such copy shall be delivered by the
officer serving or executing such summons or warrant to the person served
with, or arrested under, the same.
115.Power to dispense with personal attendance.- The Magistrate may,
if he sees sufficient cause, dispense with the personal attendance of any
person called upon to show cause why he should not be ordered to execute a
bond for keeping the peace or for good behaviour and may permit him to
appear by a pleader.
116.Inquiry as to truth of information.- (1) When an order under
section 111 has been read or explained under section 112 to a person present
in Court, or when any person appears or is brought before a Magistrate in
compliance with, or in execution of, a summons or warrant, issued under
section 113, the Magistrate shall proceed to inquire into the truth of the
information upon which action has been taken, and to take such further
evidence as may appear necessary.
(2) Such inquiry shall be made, as nearly as may be practicable, in the
manner hereinafter prescribed for conducting trial and recording evidence in
summons-cases.
(3) After the commencement, and before the completion, of the inquiry under
sub-section (1), the Magistrate, if he considers that immediate measures are
necessary for the prevention of a breach of the peace or disturbance of the
public tranquillity or the commission of any offence or for the public
safety, may, for reasons to be recorded in writing, direct the person in
respect of whom the order under section 111 has been made to execute a bond,
with or without sureties, for keeping the peace or maintaining good
behaviour until the conclusion of the inquiry, and may detail him in custody
until such bond is executed or, in default of execution, until the inquiry
is concluded:
Provided that-
(a) no person against whom proceedings are not being taken under section
108, section 109, or section 110 shall be directed to execute a bond for
maintaining good behaviour;
(b) the conditions of such bond, whether as to the amount thereof or as to
the provision of sureties or the number thereof or the pecuniary extent of
their liability, shall not be more onerous than those specified in the order
under section 111.
(4) For the purpose of this section the fact that a person is an habitual
offender or is so desperate and dangerous as to render his being at large
without security hazardous to the community may be proved by evidence of
general repute or otherwise.
(5) Where two or more persons have been associated together in the matter
under inquiry, they may be dealt with in the same or separate inquiries as
the Magistrate shall think just.
(6) The inquiry under this section shall be completed within a period of six
months from the date of its commencement, and if such inquiry is not so
completed, the proceedings under this Chapter shall on the expiry of the
said period, stand terminated unless, for special reasons to be recorded in
writing, the Magistrate otherwise directs:
Provided that where any person has been kept in detention pending such
inquiry, the proceeding against that person, unless terminated earlier,
shall stand terminated on the expiry of a period of six months of such
detention.
(7) Where any direction is made under sub-section (6) permitting the
continuance of proceedings, the Sessions Judge may, on an application made
to him by the aggrieved party, vacate such direction if he is satisfied that
it was not based on any special reason or was perverse.
117.Order to give security.- If, upon such inquiry, it is proved that
it is necessary for keeping the peace or maintaining good behaviour, as the
case may be, that the person in respect of whom the inquiry is made should
execute a bond, with or without sureties, the Magistrate shall make an order
accordingly:
Provided that-
(a) no person shall be ordered to give security of a nature different from,
or of an amount large than, or for a period longer than, that specified in
the order made under section 111;
(b) the amount of every bond shall be fixed with due regard to the
circumstances of the case and shall not be excessive;
(c) when the person in respect of whom the inquiry is made is a minor, the
bond shall be executed only by his sureties.
118.Discharge of person informed against.- If, on an inquiry under
section 116, it is not proved that it is necessary for keeping the peace or
maintaining good behaviour, as the case may be, that the person in respect
of whom the inquiry is made, should execute a bond, the Magistrate shall
make an entry on the record to that effect, and if such person is in custody
only for the purposes of the inquiry, shall release him, or, if such person
is not in custody, shall discharge him.
119.Commencement of period for which security is required.-(1) If any
person, in respect of whom an order requiring security is made under section
106 or section 117, is, at the time such order is made, sentenced to, or
undergoing a sentence of, imprisonment, the period for which such security
is required shall commence on the expiration of such sentence.
(2) In other cases such period shall commence on the date of such order
unless the Magistrate, for sufficient reason, fixes a later date.
120.Contents of bond.-The bond to be executed by any such person
shall bind him to keep the peace or to be of good behaviour, as the case may
be, and in the latter case the commission or attempt to commit, or the
abetment of, any offence punishable with imprisonment, wherever it may be
committed, is a breach of the bond.
121.Power to reject sureties.- (1) A Magistrate may refuse to accept
any surety offered, or may reject any surety previously accepted by him or
his predecessor under this Chapter on the ground that such surety is an
unfit person for the purposes of the bond:
Provided that, before so refusing to accept or rejecting any such surety, he
shall either himself hold an inquiry on oath into the fitness of the surety,
or cause such inquiry to be held and a report to be made thereon by a
Magistrate subordinate to him.
(2) Such Magistrate shall, before holding the inquiry, give reasonable
notice to the surety and to the person by whom the surety was offered and
shall, in making the inquiry, record the substance of the evidence adduced
before him.
(3) If the Magistrate is satisfied, after considering the evidence so
adduced either before him or before a Magistrate deputed under sub-section
(1), and the report of such Magistrate (if any), that the surety is an unfit
person for the purposes of the bond, he shall make an order refusing to
accept or rejecting, as the case may be, such surety and recording his
reasons for so doing:
Provided that, before making an order rejecting any surety who has
previously been accepted, the Magistrate shall issue his summons or warrant,
as he thinks fit, and cause the person for whom the surety is bound to
appear or to be brought before him.
122.Imprisonment in default of security.-(1) (a) If any person
ordered to give security under section 106 or section 117 does not give such
security on or before the date on which the period for which such security
is to be given commences, he shall, except in the case next hereinafter
mentioned, be committed to prison, or, if he is already in prison, be
detained in prison until such period expires or until within such period he
gives the security to the Court or Magistrate who made the order requiring
it.
(b) If any person after having executed a bond without sureties for keeping
the peace in pursuance of an order of a Magistrate under section 117, is
proved, to the satisfaction of such Magistrate or his successor-in-office,
to have committed breach of the bond, such Magistrate or successor-in-office
may, after recording the grounds of such proof, order that the person be
arrested and detained in prison until the expiry of the period of the bond
and such order shall be without prejudice to any other punishment or
forfeiture to which the said person may be liable in accordance with law.
(2) When such person has been ordered by a Magistrate to give security for a
period exceeding one year, such Magistrate shall, if such person does not
give such security as aforesaid, issue a warrant directing him to be
detained in prison pending the orders of the Sessions Judge and the
proceedings shall be laid, as soon as conveniently may be, before such
Court.
(3) Such Court, after examining such proceedings and requiring from the
Magistrate any further information or evidence which it thinks necessary,
and after giving the concerned person a reasonable opportunity of being
heard, may pass such order on the case as it thinks fit:
Provided that the period (if any) for which any person is imprisoned for
failure to give security shall not exceed three years.
(4) If security has been required in the course of the same proceeding from
two or more persons in respect of any one of whom the proceedings are
referred to the Sessions Judge under sub-section (2), such reference shall
also include the case of any other of such persons who has been ordered to
give security, and the provisions of sub-sections (2) and (3) shall, in that
event, apply to the case of such other person also, except that the period
(if any) for which he may be imprisoned shall not exceed the period for
which he was ordered to give security.
(5) A Sessions Judge may in his discretion transfer any proceedings laid
before him under sub-section (2) or sub-section (4) to an Additional
Sessions Judge or Assistant Sessions Judge and upon such transfer, such
Additional Sessions Judge or Assistant Sessions Judge may exercise the
powers of a Sessions Judge under this section in respect of such
proceedings.
(6) If the security is tendered to the officer in charge of the jail, he
shall forthwith refer the matter to the Court or Magistrate who made the
order, and shall await the orders of such Court or Magistrate.
(7) Imprisonment for failure to give security for keeping the peace shall be
simple.
(8) Imprisonment for failure to give security for good behaviour shall,
where the proceedings have been taken under section 108, be simple, and,
where the proceedings have been taken under section 109 or section 110, be
rigorous or simple as the Court or Magistrate in each case directs.
123.Power to release persons imprisoned for failing to give security.-
(1) Whenever the Chief Judicial Magistrate is of opinion that any person
imprisoned for failing to give security under this Chapter may be released
without hazard to the community or to any other person, he may order such
person to be discharged.
(2) Whenever any person has been imprisoned for failing to give security
under this Chapter, the High Court or Court of Session, or, where the order
was made by any other Court, the Chief Judicial Magistrate, may make an
order reducing the amount of the security or the number of sureties or the
time for which security has been required.
(3) An order under sub-section (1) may direct the discharge of such person
either without conditions or upon any conditions which such person accepts:
Provided that any condition imposed shall cease to be operative when the
period for which such person was ordered to give security has expired.
(4) The State Government may prescribe the conditions upon which a
conditional discharge may be made.
(5) If any condition upon which any person has been discharged it, in the
opinion of the Chief Judicial Magistrate by whom the order of discharge was
made or of his successor, not fulfilled, he may cancel the same.
(6) When a conditional order of discharge has been cancelled under
sub-section (5), such person may be arrested by any police officer without
warrant, and shall thereupon be produced before the Chief Judicial
Magistrate.
(7) Unless such person gives security in accordance with the terms of the
original order for the unexpired portion of the term for which he was in the
first instance committed or ordered to be detained (such portion being
deemed to be a period equal to the period between the date of the breach of
the conditions of discharge and the date on which, except for such
conditional discharge, he would have been entitled to release), the Chief
Judicial Magistrate may remand such person to prison to undergo such
unexpired portion.
(8) A person remanded to prison under sub-section (7) shall, subject to the
provisions of section 122, be released at any time on giving security in
accordance with the terms of the original order for the unexpired portion
aforesaid to the Court or Magistrate by whom such order was made, or to its
or his successor.
(9) The High Court or Court of Session may at any time, for sufficient
reasons to be recorded in writing, cancel any bond for keeping the peace or
for good behaviour executed under this Chapter by any order made by it, and
the Chief Judicial Magistrate may make such cancellation where such bond was
executed under his order or under the order of any other Court in his
direct.
(10) Any surety for the peaceable conduct or good behaviour of another
person ordered to execute a bond under this Chapter may at any time apply to
the Court making such order to cancel the bond and on such application being
made, the Court shall issue a summons or warrant, as it thinks fit,
requiring the person for whom such surety is bound to appear or to be
brought before it.
124.Security for unexpired period of bond.-(1) When a person for
whose appearance a summons or warrant has been issued under the proviso to
sub-section (3) of section 121 or under sub-section (10) of section 123,
appears or is brought before the Magistrate or Court, the Magistrate or
Court shall cancel the bond executed by such person and shall order such
person to give, for the unexpired portion of the term of such bond, fresh
security of the same description as the original security.
(2) Every such order shall, for the purposes of sections 120 to 123 (both
inclusive), be deemed to be an order made under section 106 or section 117,
as the case may be.
CHAPTER IX
ORDER FOR MAINTENANCE OF WIVES, CHILDREN AND PARENTS
125.Order for
maintenance of wives, children and parents.-
(1) If any person having sufficient means neglects or refuses to maintain-
(a) his wife, unable to maintain herself, or
(b) his legitimate or illegitimate minor child, whether married or not,
unable to maintain itself, or
(c) his legitimate or illegitimate child (not being a married daughter) who
has attained majority, where such child is by reason of any physical or
mental abnormality or injury unable to maintain itself, or
(d) his father or mother, unable to maintain himself or herself,
a Magistrate of the first class may, upon proof of such neglect or refusal,
order such person to make a monthly allowance for the maintenance of his
wife or such child, father or mother, at such monthly rate not exceeding
five hundred rupees in the whole, as such Magistrate thinks fit, and to pay
the same to such person as the Magistrate may from time to time direct:
Provided that the Magistrate may order the father of a minor female child
referred to in clause (b) to make such allowance, until she attains her
majority, if the Magistrate is satisfied that the husband of such minor
female child, if married, is not possessed of sufficient means.
Explanation.- For the purposes of this Chapter, -
(a) "minor" means a person who, under the provisions of the Indian Majority
Act, 1875( 9 of 1875) is deemed not to have attained his majority;
(b) "wife" includes a woman who has been divorced by, or has obtained a
divorce from, her husband and has not remarried.
(2) Such allowance shall be payable from the date of the order, or, if so
ordered, from the date of the application for maintenance.
(3) If any person so ordered fails without sufficient cause to comply with
the order, any such Magistrate may, for every breach of the order, issue a
warrant for levying the amount due in the manner provided for levying fines,
and may sentence such person, for the whole or any part of each month's
allowance remaining unpaid after the execution of the warrant, to
imprisonment for a term which may extend to one month or until payment if
sooner made:
Provided that no warrant shall be issued for the recovery of any amount due
under this section unless application be made to the Court to levy such
amount within a period of one year from the date on which it became due:
Provided further that if such person offers to maintain his wife on
condition of her living with him, and she refuses to live with him, such
Magistrate may consider any grounds of refusal stated by her, and may make
an order under this section notwithstanding such offer, if he is satisfied
that there is a just ground for so doing.
Explanation.- If a husband has contracted marriage with another woman or
keeps a mistress, it shall be considered to be just ground for his wife's
refusal to live with him.
(4) No wife shall be entitled to receive an allowance from her husband under
this section if she is living in adultery, or if, without any sufficient
reason, she refuses to live with her husband, or if they are living
separately by mutual consent.
(5) On proof that any wife in whose favour an order has been made under this
section is living in adultery, or that without sufficient reason she refuses
to live with her husband, or that they are living separately by mutual
consent, the Magistrate shall cancel the order.
126.Procedure.- (1) Proceedings under section 125 may be taken
against any person in any district-
(a) where he is, or
(b) where he or his wife resides, or
(c) where he last resided with his wife, or as the case may be, with the
mother of the
illegitimate child.
(2) All evidence in such proceedings shall be taken in the presence of the
person against whom an order for payment of maintenance is proposed to be
made, or, when his personal attendance is dispensed with in the presence of
his pleader, and shall be recorded in the manner prescribed for
summons-cases:
Provided that if the Magistrate is satisfied that the person against whom an
order for payment of maintenance is proposed to be made is wilfully avoiding
service, or wilfully neglecting to attend the Court, the Magistrate may
proceed to hear and determine the case ex parte and any order so made may be
set aside for good cause shown on an application made within three months
from the date thereof subject to such terms including terms as to payment of
costs to the opposite party as the Magistrate may think just and proper.
(3) The Court in dealing with applications under section 125 shall have
power to make such order as to costs as may be just.
127.Alteration in allowance.- (1) On proof of a change in the
circumstances of any person, receiving, under section 125 a monthly
allowance, or ordered under the same section to pay a monthly allowance to
his wife, child, father or mother, as the case may be, the Magistrate may
make such alteration in the allowance as he thinks fit:
Provided that if he increase the allowance, the monthly rate of five hundred
rupees in the whole shall not be exceeded.
(2) Where it appears to the Magistrate that, in consequence of any decision
of a competent Civil Court, any order made under section 125 should be
cancelled or varied, he shall cancel the order or, as the case may be, vary
the same accordingly.
(3) Where any order has been made under section 125 in favour of a woman who
has been divorced by, or has obtained a divorce from, her husband, the
Magistrate shall, if he is satisfied that -
(a) the woman has, after the date of such divorce, remarried, cancel such
order as from the date of her remarriage;
(b) the woman has been divorced by her husband and that she has received,
whether before or after the date of the said order, the whole of the sum
which, under any customary or personal law applicable to the parties, was
payable on such divorce, cancel such order, -
(i) in the case where such sum was paid before such order from the date on
which such order was made,
(ii) in any other case, from the date of expiry of the period, if any, for
which maintenance has been actually paid by the husband to the woman;
(c) the woman has obtained a divorce from her husband and that she had
voluntarily surrendered her rights to maintenance after her divorce, cancel
the order from the date thereof.
(4) At the time of making any decree for the recovery of any maintenance or
dowry by any person, to whom a monthly allowance has been ordered to be paid
under section 125, the Civil Court shall take into account the sum which has
been paid to, or recovered by, such person as monthly allowance in pursuance
of the said order.
128.Enforcement of order of maintenance.- A copy of the order of
maintenance shall be given without payment to the person in whose favour it
is made, or to his guardian, if any, or to the person to whom the allowance
is to be paid; and such order may be enforced by any Magistrate in any place
where the person against whom it is made may be, on such Magistrate being
satisfied as to the identity of the parties and the non-payment of the
allowance due.
CHAPTER X
MAINTENANCE OF PUBLIC ORDER AND TRANQUILLITY
A.- Unlawful assemblies
129.Dispersal of assembly by use of civil force.-
(1) Any Executive Magistrate or officer incharge of a police station or, in
the absence of such officer incharge, any police officer, not below the rank
of a sub-inspector, may command any unlawful assembly, or any assembly of
five or more persons likely to cause a disturbance of the public peace, to
disperse; and it shall thereupon be the duty of the members of such assembly
to disperse accordingly.
(2) If, upon being so commanded, any such assembly does not disperse, or if,
without being so commanded, it conducts itself in such a manner as to show a
determination not to disperse, any Executive Magistrate or police officer
referred to in sub-section (1), may proceed to disperse such assembly by
force, and may require the assistance of any male person, not being an
officer or member of the armed forces and acting as such, for the purpose of
dispersing such assembly, and, if necessary, arresting and confining the
persons who form part of it, in order to disperse such assembly or that they
may be punished according to law.
130.Use of armed forces to disperse assembly.- (1) If any such
assembly cannot be otherwise dispersed, and if it is necessary for the
public security that it should be dispersed, the Executive Magistrate of the
highest rank who is present may cause it to be dispersed by the armed
forces.
(2) Such Magistrate may require any officer in command of any group of
persons belonging to the armed forces to disperse the assembly with the help
of the armed forces under his command, and to arrest and confine such
persons forming part of it as the Magistrate may direct, or as it may be
necessary to arrest and confine in order to disperse the assembly or to have
them punished according to law.
(3) Every such officer of the armed forces shall obey such requisition in
such manner as he thinks fit, but in so doing he shall use as little force,
and do as little injury to person and property, as may be consistent with
dispersing the assembly and arresting and detaining such persons.
131.Power of certain armed force officers to disperse assembly.-When
the public security is manifestly endangered by any such assembly and no
Executive Magistrate can be communicated with, any commissioned or gazetted
officer of the armed forces may disperse such assembly with the help of the
armed forces under his command, and may arrest and confine any persons
forming part of it, in order to disperse such assembly or that they may be
punished according to law; but if, while he is acting under this section, it
becomes practicable for him to communicate with an Executive Magistrate, he
shall do so, and shall thenceforward obey the instructions of the
Magistrate, as to whether he shall or shall not continue such action.
132.Protection against prosecution for acts done under preceding sections.-
(1)No prosecution against any person for any act purporting to be done under
section 129, section 130 or section 131 shall be instituted in any Criminal
Court except -
(a) with the sanction of the Central Government where such person is an
officer or member of the armed forces;
(b) with the sanction of the State Government in any other case.
(2) (a) No Executive Magistrate or police officer acting under any of the
said sections in good faith;
(b) no person doing any act in good faith in compliance with a requisition
under section 129 or section 130;
(c) no officer of the armed forces acting under section 131 in good faith;
(d) no member of the armed forces doing any act in obedience to any order
which he was bound to obey,
shall be deed to have thereby committed an offence.
(3) In this section and in the preceding sections of this Chapter, -
(a) the expression "armed forces" means the military, naval and air forces,
operating as land forces and includes any other Armed Forces of the Union so
operating;
(b)"officer", in relation to the armed forces, means a person commissioned,
gazetted or in pay as an officer of the armed forces and includes a junior
commissioned officer, a warrant officer, a petty officer, a non-commissioned
officer and a non-gazetted officer;
(c)"member", in relation to the armed forces, means a person in the armed
forces other than an officer.
B.- Public nuisances
133.Conditional order for removal of nuisance.- (1) Whenever a District
Magistrate or a Sub-divisional Magistrate or any other Executive Magistrate
specially empowered in this behalf by the State Government, on receiving the
report of a police officer or other information and on taking such evidence
(if any) as he thinks fit, considers -
(a) that any unlawful obstruction or nuisance should be removed from any
public place or from any way, river or channel which is or may be lawfully
used by the public; or
(b) that the conduct of any trade or occupation, or the keeping of any goods
or merchandise, is injurious to the health or physical comfort of the
community , and that in consequence such trade or occupation should be
prohibited or regulated or such goods or merchandise should be removed or
the keeping thereof regulated; or
(c) that the construction of any building, or, the disposal of any substance
, as is likely to occasion conflagration or explosion, should be prevented
or stopped; or
(d) that any building, tent or structure, or any tree is in such a condition
that it is likely to fall and thereby cause injury to persons living or
carrying on business in the neighbourhood or passing by, and that in
consequence the removal, repair or support of such building, tent or
structure, or the removal or support of such tree, is necessary; or
(e) that any tank, well or excavation adjacent to any such way or public
place should be fenced in such manner as to prevent danger arising to the
public; or
(f) that any dangerous animal should be destroyed, confined or otherwise
disposed of,
such Magistrate may make a conditional order requiring the person causing
such obstruction or nuisance, or carrying on such trade or occupation, or
keeping any such goods or merchandise, or owning, possessing or controlling
such building, tent, structure, substance, tank, well or excavation, or
owning or possessing such animal or tree, within a time to be fixed in the
order-
(i) to remove such obstruction or nuisance; or
(ii) to desist from carrying on, or to remove or regulate in such manner as
may be directed, such trade or occupation, or to remove such goods or
merchandise, or to regulate the keeping thereof in such manner as may be
directed; or
(iii) to prevent or stop the construction of such building, or to alter the
disposal of such substance; or
(iv) to remove, repair or support such building, tent or structure, or to
remove or support such trees; or
(v) to fence such tank, well or excavation; or
(vi) to destroy, confine or dispose of such dangerous animal in the manner
provided in the said order;
or, if he objects so to do, to appear before himself or some other Executive
Magistrate subordinate to him at a time and place to be fixed by the order,
and show cause, in the manner hereinafter provided, why the order should not
be made absolute.
(2) No order duly made by a Magistrate under this section shall be called in
question in any Civil Court.
Explanation.- A "public place" includes also property belonging to the
State, camping grounds and left unoccupied for sanitary or recreative
purposes.
134.Service or notification of order.- (1)The order shall, if
practicable, be served on the person against whom it is made, in the manner
herein provided for service of a summons.
(2) If such order cannot be so served, it shall be notified by proclamation,
published in such manner as the State Government may, by rules, direct, and
a copy thereof shall be stuck up at such place or places as may be fittest
for conveying the information to such person.
135.Person to whom order is addressed to obey or show cause.-The
person against whom such order is made shall -
(a) perform, within the time and in the manner specified in the order, the
act directed thereby; or
(b) appear in accordance with such order and show cause against the same.
136.Consequences of his failing to do so.- If such person does not
perform such act or appear and show cause, he shall be liable to the penalty
prescribed in that behalf in section 188 of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of
1860)and the order shall be made absolute.
137.Procedure where existence of public right is denied.- (1) Where
an order is made under section 133 for the purpose of preventing
obstruction, nuisance or danger to the public in the use of any way, river,
channel or place, the Magistrate shall, on the appearance before him of the
person against whom the order was made, question him as to whether he denies
the existence of any public right in respect of the way, river, channel or
place, and if he does so, the Magistrate shall, before proceeding under
section 138, inquire into the matter.
(2) If in such inquiry the Magistrate finds that there is any reliable
evidence in support of such denial, he shall stay the proceedings until the
matter of the existence of such right has been decided by a competent Court;
and, if he finds that there is no such evidence, he shall proceed as laid
down in section 138.
(3) A person who has, on being questioned by the Magistrate under
sub-section (1), failed to deny the existence of a public right of the
nature therein referred to, or who, having made such denial, has failed to
adduce reliable evidence in support thereof, shall not in the subsequent
proceedings be permitted to make any such denial.
138.Procedure where he appears to show cause.- (1) If the person
against whom an order under section 133 is made appears and shows cause
against the order, the Magistrate shall take evidence in the matter as in a
summons-case.
(2) If the Magistrate is satisfied that the order, either as originally made
or subject to such modification as he considers necessary, is reasonable and
proper, the order shall be made absolute without modification or, as the
case may be, with such modification.
(3) If the Magistrate is not so satisfied, no further proceedings shall be
taken in the case.
139.Power of Magistrate to direct local investigation and examination of
an expert.- The Magistrate may, for the purposes of an inquiry under
section 137 or section 138-
(a) direct a local investigation to be made by such person as he thinks fit;
or
(b) summon and examine an expert.
140.Power of Magistrate to furnish written instructions, etc.- (1)
Where the Magistrate directs a local investigation by any person under
section 139, the Magistrate may -
(a) furnish such person with such written instructions as may seem necessary
for his guidance;
(b) declare by whom the whole or any part of the necessary expenses of the
local investigation shall be paid.
(2) The report of such person may be read as evidence in the case.
(3) Where the Magistrate summons and examines an expert under section 139,
the Magistrate may direct by whom the costs of such summoning and
examination shall be paid.
141.Procedure on order being made absolute and consequences of
disobedience.- (1) When an order has been made absolute under section
136 or section 138, the Magistrate shall give notice of the same to the
person against whom the order was made, and shall further require him to
perform the act directed by the order within a time to be fixed in the
notice, and inform him that, in case of disobedience, he will be liable to
the penalty provided by section 188 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860).
(2) If such act is not performed within the time fixed, the Magistrate may
cause it to be performed, and may recover the costs of performing it, either
by the sale of any building, goods or other property removed by his order,
or by the distress and sale of any other movable property of such person
within or without such Magistrate's local jurisdiction and if such other
property is without such jurisdiction, the order shall authorise its
attachment and sale when endorsed by the Magistrate within whose local
jurisdiction the property to be attached is found.
(3) No suit shall lie in respect of anything done in good faith under this
section.
142.Injunction pending inquiry.- (1) If a Magistrate making an order
under section 133 considers that immediate measures should be taken to
prevent imminent danger or injury of a serious kind to the public, he may
issue such an injunction to the person against whom the order was made, as
is required to obviate or prevent such danger or injury pending the
determination of the matter.
(2) In default of such person forthwith obeying such injunction, the
Magistrate may himself use, or cause to be used, such means as he thinks fit
to obviate such danger or to prevent such injury.
(3) No suit shall lie in respect of anything done in good faith by a
Magistrate under this section.
143.Magistrate may prohibit repetition or continuance of public nuisance.-
A District Magistrate or Sub-divisional Magistrate, or any other Executive
Magistrate empowered by the State Government or the District Magistrate in
this behalf, may order any person not to repeat or continue a public
nuisance, as defined in the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860) or any special
or local law.
C.- Urgent cases of nuisance or apprehended danger
144.Power to issue order in urgent cases of nuisance or apprehended danger.-
(1) In cases where, in the opinion of a District Magistrate, a
Sub-divisional Magistrate or any other Executive Magistrate specially
empowered by the State Government in this behalf, there is sufficient ground
for proceeding under this section and immediate prevention or speedy remedy
is desirable, such Magistrate may, by a written order stating the material
facts of the case and served in the manner provided by section 134, direct
any person to abstain from a certain act or to take certain order with
respect to certain property in his possession or under his management, if
such Magistrate considers that such direction is likely to prevent, or tends
to prevent, obstruction, annoyance or injury to any person lawfully
employed, or danger to human life, health or safety, or a disturbance of the
public tranquillity, or a riot, or an affray.
(2) An order under this section may, in cases of emergency or in cases where
the circumstances do not admit of the serving in due time of a notice upon
the person against whom the order is directed, be passed ex parte.
(3) An order under this section may be directed to a particular individual,
or to persons residing in a particular place or area, or to the public
generally when frequenting or visiting a particular place or area.
(4) No order under this section shall remain in force for more than two
months from the making thereof:
Provided that, if the State Government considers it necessary so to do for
preventing danger to human life, health or safety or for preventing a riot
or any affray, it may, by notification, direct that an order made by a
Magistrate under this section shall remain in force for such further period
not exceeding six months from the date on which the order made by the
Magistrate would have, but for such order, expired, as it may specify in the
said notification.
(5) Any Magistrate may, either on his own motion or on the application of
any person aggrieved, rescind or alter any order made under this section, by
himself or any Magistrate subordinate to him or by his
predecessor-in-office.
(6) The State Government may, either on its own motion or on the application
of any person aggrieved, rescind or alter any order made by it under the
proviso to sub-section (4).
(7) Where an application under sub-section (5) or sub-section (6) is
received, the Magistrate, or the State Government, as the case may be, shall
afford to the applicant an early opportunity of appearing before him or it,
either in person or by pleader and showing cause against the order; and if
the Magistrate or the State Government, as the case may be, rejects the
application wholly or in part, he or it shall record in writing the reasons
for so doing.
D.- Disputes as to immovable property
145.Procedure where dispute concerning land or water is likely to cause
breach of peace.- (1) Whenever an Executive Magistrate is satisfied from
a report of a police or upon other information that a dispute likely to
cause a breach of the peace exists concerning any land or water or the
boundaries thereof, within his local jurisdiction, he shall make an order in
writing, stating the grounds of his being so satisfied, and requiring the
parties concerned in such dispute to attend his Court in person or by
pleader on a specified date and time, and to put in written statements of
their respective claims as respects the fact of actual possession of the
subject of dispute.
(2) For the purposes of this section, the expression "land or water"
includes buildings, markets, fisheries, crops or other produce of land, and
the rents or profits of any such property.
(3) A copy of the order shall be served in the manner provided by this Code
for the service of a summons upon such person or persons as the Magistrate
may direct, and at least one copy shall be published by being affixed to
some conspicuous place at or near the subject of dispute.
(4) The Magistrate shall then, without reference to the merits or the claims
of any of the parties to a right to possess the subject of dispute, peruse
the statements so put in, hear the parties, receive all such evidence as may
be produced by them, take such further evidence, if any, as he thinks
necessary, and, if possible, decide whether any and which of the parties
was, at the date of the order made by him under sub-section (1), in
possession of the subject of dispute:
Provided that if it appears to the Magistrate that any party has been
forcibly and wrongfully dispossessed within two months next before the date
on which the report of a police officer or other information was received by
the Magistrate, or after that date and before the date of his order under
sub-section (1), he may treat the party so dispossessed as if that party had
been in possession on the date of his order under sub-section (1).
(5) Nothing in this section shall preclude any party so required to attend,
or any other person interested, from showing that no such dispute as
aforesaid exists or has existed; and in such case the Magistrate shall
cancel his said order, and all further proceedings thereon shall be stayed,
but, subject to such cancellation, the order of the Magistrate under
sub-section (1) shall be final.
(6) (a) If the Magistrate decides that one of the parties was, or should
under the proviso to sub-section (4) be treated as being, in such possession
of the said subject, he shall issue an order declaring such party to be
entitled to possession thereof until evicted therefrom in due course of law,
and forbidding all disturbance of such possession until such eviction; and
when he proceeds under the proviso to sub-section (4), may restore to
possession the party forcibly and wrongfully dispossessed.
(b) The order made under this sub-section shall be served and published in
the manner laid down in sub-section (3).
(7) When any party to any such proceeding dies, the Magistrate may cause the
legal representative of the deceased party to be made a party to the
proceeding and shall thereupon continue the inquiry, and if any question
arises as to who the legal representative of a deceased party for the
purposes of such proceeding is, all persons claiming to be representatives
of the deceased party shall be made parties thereto.
(8) If the Magistrate is of opinion that any crop or other produce of the
property, the subject of dispute in a proceeding under this section pending
before him, is subject to speedy and natural decay, he may make an order for
the proper custody or sale of such property, and, upon the completion of the
inquiry, shall make such order for the disposal of such property, or the
sale-proceeds thereof, as he thinks fit.
(9) The Magistrate may, if he thinks fit, at any stage of the proceedings
under this section, on the application of either party, issue a summons to
any witness directing him to attend or to produce any document or thing.
(10) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to be in derogation of the
powers of the Magistrate to proceed under section 107.
146.Power to attach subject of dispute and to appoint receiver.- (1)
If the Magistrate at any time after making the order under sub-section (1)
of section 145 considers the case to be one of emergency, or if he decides
that none of the parties was then in such possession as is referred to in
section 145, or if he is unable to satisfy himself as to which of them was
then in such possession of the subject of dispute, he may attach the subject
of dispute until a competent Court has determined the rights of the parties
thereto with regard to the person entitled to the possession thereof:
Provided that such Magistrate may withdraw the attachment at any time if he
is satisfied that there is no longer any likelihood of breach of the peace
with regard to the subject of dispute.
(2) When the Magistrate attaches the subject of dispute, he may, if no
receiver in relation to such subject of dispute has been appointed by any
Civil Court, make such arrangements as he considers proper for looking after
the property or if he thinks fit, appoint a receiver thereof, who shall
have, subject to the control of the Magistrate, all the powers of a receiver
appointed under the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908:
Provided that in the event of a receiver being subsequently appointed in
relation to the subject of dispute by any Civil Court, the Magistrate-
(a) shall order the receiver appointed by him to hand over the possession of
the subject of dispute to the receiver appointed by the Civil Court and
shall thereafter discharge the receiver appointed by him;
(b) may make such other incidental or consequential orders as may be just.
147.Dispute concerning right of use of land or water.- (1) Whenever
an Executive Magistrate is satisfied from the report of a police officer or
upon other information, that a dispute likely to cause a breach of the peace
exists regarding any alleged right of user of any land or water within his
local jurisdiction, whether such right be claimed as an easement or
otherwise, he shall make an order in writing, stating the grounds of his
being so satisfied and requiring the parties concerned in such dispute to
attend his Court in person or by pleader on a specified date and time and to
put in written statements of their respective claims.
Explanation.- The expression "land or water" has the meaning given to it in
sub-section (2) of section 145.
(2) The Magistrate shall then peruse the statements so put in, hear the
parties, receive all such evidence as may be produced by them respectively,
consider the effect of such evidence, take such further evidence, if any, as
he thinks necessary and, if possible, decide whether such right exists; and
the provisions of section 145 shall, so far as may be, apply in the case of
such inquiry.
(3) If it appears to such Magistrate that such rights exist, he may make an
order prohibiting any interference with the exercise of such right,
including, in a proper case, an order for the removal of any obstruction in
the exercise of any such right:
Provided that no such order shall be made where the right is exercisable at
all times of the year, unless such right has been exercised within three
months next before the receipt under sub-section (1) of the report of a
police officer or other information leading to the institution of the
inquiry, or where the right is exercisable only at particular seasons or on
particular occasions, unless the right has been exercised during the last of
such seasons or on the last of such occasions before such receipt.
(4) When in any proceedings commenced under sub-section (1) of section 145
the Magistrate finds that the dispute is as regards an alleged right of user
of land or water, he may, after recording his reasons, continue with the
proceedings as if they had been commenced under sub-section (1);
and when in any proceedings commenced under sub-section (1) the magistrate
finds that the dispute should be dealt with under section 145, he may, after
recording his reasons, continue with the proceedings as if they had been
commenced under sub-section (1) of section 145.
148.Local inquiry.- (1) Whenever a local inquiry is necessary for the
purposes of section 145, section 146 or section 147, a District Magistrate
or Sub-divisional Magistrate may depute any Magistrate subordinate to him to
make the inquiry, and may furnish him with such written instructions as may
seem necessary for his guidance, and may declare by whom the whole or any
part of the necessary expenses of the inquiry shall be paid.
(2) The report of the person so deputed may be read as evidence in the case.
(3) When any costs have been incurred by any party to a proceeding under
section 145, section 146 or section 147, the Magistrate passing a decision
may direct by whom such costs shall be paid, whether by such party or by any
other party to the proceeding, and whether in whole or in part or proportion
and such costs may include any expenses incurred in respect of witnesses and
of pleaders' fees, which the Court may consider reasonable.
CHAPTER XI
PREVENTIVE ACTION OF THE POLICE
149.Police to
prevent cognizable offences.-
Every police officer may interpose for the purpose of preventing, and shall,
to the best of his ability, prevent, the commission of any cognizable
offence.
150.Information of design to commit cognizable offences.- Every
police officer receiving information of a design to commit any cognizable
offence shall communicate such information to the police officer to whom he
is subordinate, and to any other officer whose duty it is to prevent or take
cognizance of the commission of any such offence.
151.Arrest to prevent the commission of cognizable offences.- (1) A
police officer knowing of a design to commit any cognizable offence may
arrest, without orders from a Magistrate and without a warrant, the person
so designing, if it appears to such officer that the commission of the
offence cannot be otherwise prevented.
(2) No person arrested under sub-section (1) shall be detained in custody
for a period exceeding twenty-four hours from the time of his arrest unless
his further detention is required or authorised under any other provisions
of this Code or of any other law for the time being in force.
152.Prevention of injury to public property.- A police officer may of
his own authority interpose to prevent any injury attempted to be committed
in his view to any public property, movable or immovable, or the removal of
injury of any public landmark or buoy or other mark used for navigation.
153.Inspection of weights and measures.- (1) Any officer in charge of
a police station may, without a warrant, enter any place within the limits
of such station for the purpose of inspecting or searching for any weights
or measures or instruments for weighing, used or kept therein, whenever he
has reason to believe that there are in such place any weights, measures or
instruments for weighing which are false.
(2) If he finds in such place any weights, measures or instruments for
weighing which are false, he may seize the same, and shall forthwith give
information of such seizure to a Magistrate having jurisdiction.
CHAPTER XII
INFORMATION TO THE POLICE AND THEIR POWERS TO INVESTIGATE
154.Information in
cognizable cases.-
(1) Every information relating to the commission of a cognizable offence, if
given orally to an officer in charge of a police station, shall be reduced
to writing by him or under his direction, and be read over to the informant;
and every such information, whether given in writing or reduced to writing
as aforesaid, shall be signed by the person giving it, and the substance
thereof shall be entered in a book to be kept by such officer in such form
as the State Government may prescribe in this behalf.
(2) A copy of the information as recorded under sub-section (1) shall be
given forthwith, free of cost, to the informant.
(3) Any person aggrieved by a refusal on the part of an officer in charge of
a police station to record the information referred to in sub-section (1)
may send the substance of such information, in writing and by post, to the
Superintendent of Police concerned who, if satisfied that such information
discloses the commission of a cognizable offence, shall either investigate
the case himself or direct an investigation to be made by any police officer
subordinate to him, in the manner provided by this Code, and such officer
shall have all the powers of an officer in charge of the police station in
relation to that offence.
155.Information as to non-cognizable cases and investigation of such
cases.- (1) When information is given to an officer in charge of a
police station of the commission within the limits of such station of a
non-cognizable offence, he shall enter or cause to be entered the substance
of the information in a book to be kept by such officer in such form as the
State Government may prescribe in this behalf, and refer the informant to
the Magistrate.
(2) No police officer shall investigate a non-cognizable case without the
order of a Magistrate having power to try such case or commit the case for
trial.
(3) Any police officer receiving such order may exercise the same powers in
respect of the investigation (except the power to arrest without warrant) as
an officer in charge of a police station may exercise in a cognizable case.
(4) Where a case relates to two or more offences of which at least one is
cognizable, the case shall be deemed to be a cognizable case,
not-withstanding that the other offences are non-cognizable.
156.Police officers power to investigate cognizable case.- (1) Any
officer in charge of a police station may, without the order of a
Magistrate, investigate any cognizable case which a Court having
jurisdiction over the local area within the limits of such station would
have power to inquire into or try under the provisions of Chapter XIII.
(2) No proceeding of a police officer in any such case shall at any stage be
called in question on the ground that the case was one which such officer
was not empowered under this section to investigate.
(3) Any Magistrate empowered under section 190 may order such an
investigation as above-mentioned.
157.Procedure for investigation.- (1) If, from information received
or otherwise, an officer in charge of a police station has reason to suspect
the commission of an offence which he is empowered under section 156 to
investigate, he shall forthwith send a report of the same to a Magistrate
empowered to take cognizance of such offence upon a police report and shall
proceed in person, or shall depute one of his subordinate officers not being
below such rank as the State Government may, by general or special order,
prescribe in this behalf, to proceed, to the spot, to investigate the facts
and circumstances of the case, and, if necessary, to take measures for the
discovery and arrest of the offender:
Provided that-
(a) when information as to the commission of any such offence is given
against any person by name and the case is not of a serious nature, the
officer in charge of a police station need not proceed in person or depute a
subordinate officer to make an investigation on the spot;
(b) if it appears to the officer in charge of a police station that there is
no sufficient ground for entering on an investigation, he shall not
investigate the case.
(2) In each of the cases mentioned in clauses (a) and (b) of the proviso to
sub-section (1), the officer in charge of the police station shall state in
his report his reasons for not fully complying with the requirements of that
sub-section, and, in the case mentioned in clause (b) of the said proviso,
the officer shall also forthwith notify to the informant, if any, in such
manner as may be prescribed by the State Government, the fact that he will
not investigate the case or cause it to be investigated.
158.Report how submitted.- (1) Every report sent to a Magistrate
under section 157 shall, if the State Government so directs, be submitted
through such superior officer of police as the State Government, by general
or special order, appoints in that behalf.
(2) Such superior officer may give such instructions to the officer in
charge of the police station as he thinks fit, and shall, after recording
such instructions on such report, transmit the same without delay to the
Magistrate.
159.Power to hold investigation or preliminary inquiry.- Such
Magistrate, on receiving such report, may direct an investigation, or, if he
thinks fit, at once proceed, or depute any Magistrate subordinate to him to
proceed, to hold a preliminary inquiry into, or otherwise to dispose of, the
case in the manner provided in this Code.
160.Police officers power to require attendance of witnesses.- (1)
Any police officer making an investigation under this Chapter may, by order
in writing, require the attendance before himself of any person being within
the limits of his own or any adjoining station who, from the information
given or otherwise, appears to be acquainted with the facts and
circumstances of the case; and such person shall attend as so required:
Provided that no male person under the age of fifteen years or woman shall
be required to attend at any place other than the place in which such male
person or woman resides.
(2) The State Government may, by rules made in this behalf, provide for the
payment by the police officer of the reasonable expenses of every person,
attending under sub-section (1) at any place other than his residence.
161.Examination of witnesses by police.- (1) Any police officer
making an investigation under this Chapter, or any police officer not below
such rank as the State Government may, by general or special order,
prescribe in this behalf, acting on the requisition of such officer, may
examine orally any person supposed to be acquainted with the facts and
circumstances of the case.
(2) Such person shall be bound to answer truly all questions relating to
such case put to him by such officer, other than questions the answers to
which would have a tendency to expose him to a criminal charge or to a
penalty or forfeiture.
(3) The police officer may reduce into writing any statement made to him in
the course of an examination under this section; and if he does so, he shall
make a separate and true record of the statement of each such person whose
statement he records.
162.Statements to police not to be signed: Use of statements in
evidence.- (1) No statement made by any person to a police officer in the
course of an investigation under this Chapter, shall, if reduced to writing,
be signed by the person making it; nor shall any such statement or any
record thereof, whether in a police diary or otherwise, or any part of such
statement or record, be used for any purpose, save as hereinafter provided,
at any inquiry or trial in respect of any offence under investigation at the
time when such statement was made:
Provided that when any witness is called for the prosecution in such inquiry
or trial whose statement has been reduced into writing as aforesaid, any
part of his statement, if duly proved, may be used by the accused, and with
the permission of the Court, by the prosecution, to contradict such witness
in the manner provided by section 145 of the Indian Evidence Act , 1872; (1
of 1872) and when any part of such statement is so used, any part thereof
may also be used in the re-examination of such witness, but for the purpose
only of explaining any matter referred to in his cross-examination.
(2) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to apply to any statement
falling within the provisions of clause (1) of section 32 of the Indian
Evidence Act, 1872, (1 of 1872) or to affect the provisions of section 27 of
that Act.
Explanation.- An omission to state a fact or circumstance in the statement
referred to in sub-section (1) may amount to contradiction if the same
appears to be significant and otherwise relevant having regard to the
context in which such omission occurs and whether any omission amounts to a
contradiction in the particular context shall be a question of fact.
163.No inducement to be offered.- (1) No police officer or other
person in authority shall offer or make, or cause to be offered or made, any
such inducement, threat or promise as is mentioned in section 24 of the
Indian Evidence Act, 1872(1 of 1872).
(2) But no police officer or other person shall prevent, by any caution or
otherwise, any person from making in the course of any investigation under
this Chapter any statement which he may be disposed to make of his own free
will:
Provided that nothing in this sub-section shall affect the provisions of
sub-section (4) of section 164.
164.Recording of confessions and statements.- (1) Any Metropolitan
Magistrate or Judicial Magistrate may, whether or not he has jurisdiction in
the case, record any confession or statement made to him in the course of an
investigation under this Chapter or under any other law for the time being
in force, or at any time afterwards before the commencement of the inquiry
or trial:
Provided that no confession shall be recorded by a police officer on whom
any power of a Magistrate has been conferred under any law for the time
being in force.
(2) The Magistrate shall, before recording any such confession, explain to
the person making it that he is not bound to make a confession and that, if
he does so, it may be used as evidence against him; and the Magistrate shall
not record any such confession unless, upon questioning the person making
it, he has reason to believe that it is being made voluntarily.
(3) If at any time before the confession is recorded, the person appearing
before the Magistrate states that he is not willing to make the confession,
the Magistrate shall not authorise the detention of such person in police
custody.
(4) Any such confession shall be recorded in the manner provided in section
281 for recording the examination of an accused person and shall be signed
by the person making the confession; and the Magistrate shall make a
memorandum at the foot of such record to the following effect:-
"I have explained to (name) that he is not bound to make a confession and
that, if he does so, any confession he may make may be used as evidence
against him and I believe that this confession was voluntarily made.It was
taken in my presence and hearing, and was read over to the person making it
and admitted by him to be correct, and it contains a full and true account
of the statement made by him.
(Signed) A. B.
Magistrate".
(5) Any statement (other than a confession) made under sub-section (1) shall
be recorded in such manner hereinafter provided for the recording of
evidence as is, in the opinion of the Magistrate, best fitted to the
circumstances of the case; and the Magistrate shall have power to administer
oath to the person whose statement is so recorded.
(6) The Magistrate recording a confession or statement under this section
shall forward it to the Magistrate by whom the case is to be inquired into
or tried.
165.Search by police officer.- (1) Whenever an officer in charge of a
police station or a police officer making an investigation has reasonable
grounds for believing that anything necessary for the purposes of an
investigation into any offence which he is authorised to investigate may be
found in any place within the limits of the police station of which he is in
charge, or to which he is attached, and that such thing cannot in his
opinion be otherwise obtained without undue delay, such officer may, after
recording in writing the grounds of his belief and specifying in such
writing, so far as possible, the thing for which search is to be made,
search, or cause search to be made, for such thing in any place within the
limits of such station.
(2) A police officer proceeding under sub-section (1), shall, if
practicable, conduct the search in person.
(3) If he is unable to conduct the search in person, and there is no other
person competent to make the search present at the time, he may, after
recording in writing his reasons for so doing, require any officer
subordinate to him to make the search, and he shall deliver to such
subordinate officer an order in writing, specifying the place to be
searched, and so far as possible, the thing for which search is to be made;
and such subordinate officer may thereupon search for such thing in such
place.
(4) The provisions of this Code as to search-warrants and the general
provisions as to searches contained in section 100 shall, so far as may be,
apply to a search made under this section.
(5) Copies of any record made under sub-section (1) or sub-section (3) shall
forthwith be sent to the nearest Magistrate empowered to take cognizance of
the offence, and the owner or occupier of the place searched shall, on
application, be furnished, free of cost, with a copy of the same by the
Magistrate.
166.When officer in charge of police station may require another to issue
search warrant.- (1) An officer in charge of a police station or a
police officer not being below the rank of sub-inspector making an
investigation may require an officer in charge of another police station,
whether in the same or a different district, to cause a search to be made in
any place, in any case in which the former officer might cause such search
to be made, within the limits of his own station.
(2) Such officer, on being so required, shall proceed according to the
provisions of section 165, and shall forward the thing found, if any, to the
officer at whose request the search was made.
(3) Whenever there is reason to believe that the delay occasioned by
requiring an officer in-charge of another police station to cause a search
to be made under sub-section (1) might result in evidence of the commission
of an offence being concealed or destroyed, it shall be lawful for an
officer in-charge of a police station or a police officer making any
investigation under this Chapter to search, or cause to be searched, any
place in the limits of another police station in accordance with the
provisions of section 165, as if such place were within the limits of his
own police station.
(4) Any officer conducting a search under sub-section (3) shall forthwith
send notice of the search to the officer in charge of the police station
within the limits of which such place is situate, and shall also send with
such notice a copy of the list (if any) prepared under section 100, and
shall also send to the nearest Magistrate empowered to take cognizance of
the offence, copies of the records referred to in sub-sections (1) and (3)
of section 165.
(5) The owner or occupier of the place searched shall, on application, be
furnished free of cost with a copy of any record sent to the Magistrate
under sub-section (4).
167.Procedure when investigation cannot be completed in twenty four hours.-
(1) Whenever any person is arrested and detained in custody, and it appears
that the investigation cannot be completed within the period of twenty-four
hours fixed by section 57, and there are grounds for believing that the
accusation or information is well-founded, the officer in charge of the
police station or the police officer making the investigation, if he is not
below the rank of sub-inspector, shall forthwith transmit to the nearest
Judicial Magistrate a copy of the entries in the diary hereinafter
prescribed relating to the case, and shall at the same time forward the
accused to such Magistrate.
(2) The Magistrate to whom an accused person is forwarded under this section
may, whether he has or has not jurisdiction to try the case, from time to
time, authorise the detention of the accused in such custody as such
Magistrate thinks fit, for a term not exceeding fifteen days in the whole;
and if he has no jurisdiction to try the case or commit it for trial, and
considers further detention unnecessary, he may order the accused to be
forwarded to a Magistrate having such jurisdiction:
Provided that-
(a) the Magistrate may authorise detention of the accused person, otherwise
than in custody of the police, beyond the period of fifteen days if he is
satisfied that adequate grounds exist for doing so, but no Magistrate shall
authorise the detention of the accused person in custody under this section
for a total period exceeding sixty days, and on the expiry of the said
period of sixty days, the accused person shall be released on bail if he is
prepared to and does furnish bail; and every person released on bail under
this section shall be deemed to be so released under the provisions of
Chapter XXXIII for the purposes of that Chapter;
(b) no Magistrate shall authorise detention in any custody under this
section unless the accused is produced before him;
(c) no Magistrate of the second class, not specially empowered in this
behalf by the High Court, shall authorise detention in the custody of the
police.
Explanation.- If any question arises whether an accused person was produced
before the Magistrate as required under paragraph (b), the production of the
accused person may be proved by his signature on the order authorising
detention.
(3) A Magistrate authorising under this section detention in the custody of
the police shall record his reasons for so doing.
(4) Any Magistrate other than the Chief Judicial Magistrate making such
order shall forward a copy of his order, with his reasons for making it, to
the Chief Judicial Magistrate.
(5) If in any case triable by a Magistrate as a summons-case, the
investigation is not concluded within a period of six months from the date
on which the accused was arrested, the Magistrate shall make an order
stopping further investigation into the offence unless the officer making
the investigation satisfies the Magistrate that for special reasons and in
the interests of justice the continuation of the investigation beyond the
period of six months is necessary.
(6) Where any order stopping further investigation into an offence has been
made under sub-section (5), the Sessions Judge may, if he is satisfied, on
an application made to him or otherwise, that further investigation into the
offence ought to be made, vacate the order made under sub-section (5) and
direct further investigation to be made into the offence subject to such
directions with regard to bail and other matters as he may specify.
168.Report of investigation by subordinate police officer.- When any
subordinate police officer has made any investigation under this Chapter, he
shall report the result of such investigation to the officer in charge of
the police station.
169.Release of accused when evidence deficient.- If, upon an
investigation under this Chapter, it appears to the officer in charge of the
police station that there is not sufficient evidence or reasonable ground of
suspicion to justify the forwarding of the accused to a Magistrate, such
officer shall, if such person is in custody, release him on his executing a
bond, with or without sureties, as such officer may direct, to appear, if
and when so required, before a Magistrate empowered to take cognizance of
the offence on a police report, and to try the accused or commit him for
trial.
170.Cases to be sent to Magistrate when evidence is sufficient.- (1)
If, upon an investigation under this Chapter, it appears to the officer in
charge of the police station that there is sufficient evidence or reasonable
ground as aforesaid, such officer shall forward the accused under custody to
a Magistrate empowered to take cognizance of the offence upon a police
report and to try the accused or commit him for trial, or, if the offence is
bailable and the accused is able to give security, shall take security from
him for his appearance before such Magistrate on a day fixed and for his
attendance from day to day before such Magistrate until otherwise directed.
(2) When the officer in charge of a police station forwards an accused
person to a Magistrate or takes security for his appearance before such
Magistrate under this section, he shall send to such Magistrate any weapon
or other article which it may be necessary to produce before him, and shall
require the complainant (if any) and so many of the persons who appear to
such officer to be acquainted with the facts and circumstances of the case
as he may think necessary, to execute a bond to appear before the Magistrate
as thereby directed and prosecute or give evidence (as the case may be) in
the matter of the charge against the accused.
(3) If the Court of the Chief Judicial Magistrate is mentioned in the bond,
such Court shall be held to include any Court to which such Magistrate may
refer the case for inquiry or trial, provided reasonable notice of such
reference is given to such complainant or persons.
(4) The officer in whose presence the bond is executed shall deliver a copy
thereof to one of the persons who executed it, and shall then send to the
Magistrate the original with his report.
171.Complainant and witnesses not to be required to accompany police
officer and not to be subjected to restraint.- No complainant or witness
on his way to any Court shall be required to accompany a police officer, or
shall be subjected to unnecessary restraint or inconvenience, or required to
give any security for his appearance other than his own bond:
Provided that, if any complainant or witness refuses to attend or to execute
a bond as directed in section 170, the officer in charge of the police
station may forward him in custody to the Magistrate, who may detain him in
custody until he executes such bond, or until the hearing of the case is
completed.
172.Diary of proceedings in investigation.- (1) Every police officer
making an investigation under this Chapter shall day by day enter his
proceedings in the investigation in a diary, setting forth the time at which
the information reached him, the time at which he began and closed his
investigation, the place or places visited by him, and a statement of the
circumstances ascertained through his investigation.
(2) Any Criminal Court may send for the police diaries of a case under
inquiry or trial in such Court, and may use such diaries, not as evidence in
the case, but to aid it in such inquiry or trial.
(3) Neither the accused nor his agents shall be entitled to call for such
diaries, nor shall he or they be entitled to see them merely because they
are referred to by the Court; but, if they are used by the police officer
who made them to refresh his memory, or if the Court uses them for the
purpose of contradicting such police officer, the provisions of section 161
or section 145 as the case may be, of the Indian Evidence Act, 1872, (1 of
1872) shall apply.
173.Report of police officer on completion of investigation.- (1)
Every investigation under this Chapter shall be completed without
unnecessary delay.
(2) (i) As soon as it is completed, the officer in charge of the police
station shall forward to a Magistrate empowered to take cognizance of the
offence on a police report, a report in the form prescribed by the State
Government, stating -
(a) the names of the parties;
(b) the nature of the information;
(c) the names of the persons who appear to be acquainted with the
circumstances of the case;
(d) whether any offence appears to have been committed and, if so, by whom;
(e) whether the accused has been arrested;
(f) whether he has been released on his bond and, if so, whether with or
without sureties;
(g) whether he has been forwarded in custody under section 170.
(ii) The officer shall also communicate, in such manner as may be prescribed
by the State Government, the action taken by him, to the person, if any, by
whom the information relating to the commission of the offence was first
given.
(3) Where a superior officer of police has been appointed under section 158,
the report shall, in any case in which the State Government by general or
special order so directs, be submitted through that officer, and he may,
pending the orders of the Magistrate, direct the officer in charge of the
police station to make further investigation.
(4) Whenever it appears from a report forwarded under this section that the
accused has been released on his bond, the Magistrate shall make such order
for the discharge of such bond or otherwise as he thinks fit.
(5) When such report is in respect of a case to which section 170 applies,
the police officer shall forward to the Magistrate along with the report-
(a) all documents or relevant extracts thereof on which the prosecution
proposes to rely other than those already sent to the Magistrate during
investigation;
(b) the statements recorded under section 161 of all the persons whom the
prosecution proposes to examine as its witnesses.
(6) If the police officer is of opinion that any part of any such statement
is not relevant to the subject-matter of the proceedings or that its
disclosure to the accused is not essential in the interest of justice and is
inexpedient in the public interest, he shall indicate that part of the
statement and append a note requesting the Magistrate to exclude that part
from the copies to be granted to the accused and stating his reasons for
making such request.
(7) Where the police officer investigating the case finds it convenient so
to do, he may furnish to the accused copies of all or any of the documents
referred to in sub-section (5).
(8) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to preclude further
investigation in respect of an offence after a report under sub-section (2)
has been forwarded to the Magistrate and, where upon such investigation, the
officer in charge of the police station obtains further evidence, oral or
documentary, he shall forward to the Magistrate a further report or reports
regarding such evidence in the form prescribed; and the provisions of
sub-sections (2) to (6) shall, as far as may be, apply in relation to such
report or reports as they apply in relation to a report forwarded under
sub-section (2).
174.Police to enquire and report on suicide, etc.- (1) When the
officer in charge of a police station or some other police officer specially
empowered by the State Government in that behalf receives information that a
person has committed suicide, or has been killed by another or by an animal
or by machinery or by an accident, or has died under circumstances raising a
reasonable suspicion that some other person has committed an offence, he
shall immediately give intimation thereof to the nearest Executive
Magistrate empowered to hold inquests, and, unless otherwise directed by any
rule prescribed by the State Government, or by any general or special order
of the District or Sub-divisional Magistrate, shall proceed to the place
where the body of such deceased person is, and there, in the presence of two
or more respectable inhabitants of the neighbourhood, shall make an
investigation, and draw up a report of the apparent cause of death,
describing such wounds, fractures, bruises, and other marks of injury as may
be found on the body, and stating in what manner, or by what weapon or
instrument (if any); such marks appear to have been inflicted.
(2) The report shall be signed by such police officer and other persons, or
by so many of them as concur therein, and shall be forthwith forwarded to
the District Magistrate or the Sub-divisional Magistrate.
(3) When there is any doubt regarding the cause of death, or when for any
other reason the police officer considers it expedient so to do, he shall,
subject to such rules as the State Government may prescribe in this behalf,
forward the body, with a view to its being examined, to the nearest Civil
Surgeon, or other qualified medical man appointed in this behalf by the
State Government, if the state of the weather and the distance admit of its
being so forwarded without risk of such putrefaction on the road as would
render such examination useless.
(4) The following Magistrates are empowered to hold inquests, namely, any
District Magistrate or Sub-divisional Magistrate and any other Executive
Magistrate specially empowered in this behalf by the State Government or the
District Magistrate.
175.Power to summon persons.- (1) A police officer proceeding under
section 174 may, by order in writing, summon two or more persons as
aforesaid for the purpose of the said investigation, and any other person
who appears to be acquainted with the facts of the case and every person so
summoned shall be bound to attend and to answer truly all questions other
than questions the answers to which would have a tendency to expose him to a
criminal charge or to a penalty or forfeiture.
(2) If the facts do not disclose a cognizable offence to which section 170
applies, such persons shall not be required by the police officer to attend
a Magistrate's Court.
176.Inquiry by Magistrate into cause of death.- (1) When any person
dies while in the custody of the police, the nearest Magistrate empowered to
hold inquests shall, and in any other case mentioned in sub-section (1) of
section 174, any Magistrate so empowered may hold an inquiry into the cause
of death either instead of, or in addition to, the investigation held by the
police officer; and if he does so, he shall have all the powers in
conducting it which he would have in holding an inquiry into an offence.
(2) The Magistrate holding such an inquiry shall record the evidence taken
by him in connection therewith in any manner hereinafter prescribed
according to the circumstances of the case.
(3) Whenever such Magistrate considers it expedient to make an examination
of the dead body of any person who has been already interred, in order to
discover the cause of his death, the Magistrate may cause the body to be
disinterested and examined.
(4) Where an inquiry is to be held under this section, the Magistrate shall,
wherever practicable, inform the relatives of the deceased whose names and
addresses are known, and shall allow them to remain present at the inquiry.
Explanation.- In this section, the expression "relative" means parents,
children, brothers, sisters and spouse.
CHAPTER
XIII
JURISDICTION OF THE CRIMINAL COURTS IN INQUIRIES AND TRIALS
177.Ordinary place
of inquiry and trial.-
Every offence shall ordinarily be inquired into and tried by a Court within
whose local jurisdiction it was committed.
178.Place of inquiry or trial.- (a) When it is uncertain in which of
several local areas an offence was committed, or
(b) where an offence is committed partly in one local area and partly in
another, or
(c) where an offence is a continuing one, and continues to be committed in
more local areas than one, or
(d) where it consists of several acts done in different local areas.
it may be inquired into or tried by a Court having jurisdiction over any of
such local areas.
179.Offence triable where act is done or consequence ensues.- When an
act is an offence by reason of anything which has been done and of a
consequence which has ensued, the offence may be inquired into or tried by a
Court within whose local jurisdiction such thing has been done or such
consequence has ensued.
180.Place of trial where act is an offence by reason of relation to other
offence.- When an act is an offence by reason of its relation to any
other act which is also an offence or which would be an offence if the doer
were capable of committing an offence, the first-mentioned offence may be
inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction either act
was done.
181.Place of trial in case of certain offences.- (1) Any offence of
being a thug, or murder committed by a thug , of dacoity, of dacoity with
murder, of belonging to a gang of dacoits, or of escaping from custody, may
be inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the
offence was committed or the accused person is found.
(2) Any offence of kidnapping or abduction of a person may be inquired into
or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the person was kidnapped
or abducted or was conveyed or concealed or detained.
(3) Any offence of theft, extortion or robbery may be inquired into or tried
by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the offence was committed or the
stolen property which is the subject of the offence was possessed by any
person committing it or by any person who received or retained such property
knowing or having reason to believe it to be stolen property.
(4) Any offence of criminal misappropriation or of criminal breach of trust
may be inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the
offence was committed or any part of the property which is the subject of
the offence was received or retained, or was required to be returned or
accounted for, by the accused person.
(5) Any offence which includes the possession of stolen property may be
inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the
offence was committed or the stolen property was possessed by any person who
received or retained it knowing or having reason to believe it to be stolen
property.
182.Offences committed by letters, etc.- (1) Any offence which
includes cheating may, if the deception is practiced by means of letters or
telecommunication messages, be inquired into or tried by any Court within
whose local jurisdiction such letters or messages were sent or were
received; and any offence of cheating and dishonestly inducing delivery of
property may be inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local
jurisdiction the property was delivered by the person deceived or was
received by the accused person.
(2) Any offence punishable under section 494 or section 495 of the Indian
Penal Code(45 of 1860) may be inquired into or tried by a Court within whose
local jurisdiction the offence was committed or the offender last resided
with his or her spouse by the first marriage.
183.Offence committed on journey or voyage.- When an offence is
committed whilst the person by or against whom, or the thing in respect of
which, the offence is committed is in the course of performing a journey or
voyage, the offence may be inquired into or tried by a Court through or into
whose local jurisdiction that person or thing passed in the course of that
journey or voyage.
184.Place of trial for offences triable together.- Where-
(a) the offences committed by any person are such that he may be charged
with, and tried at one trial for, each such offence by virtue of the
provisions of section 219, section 220 or section 221, or
(b) the offence or offences committed by several persons are such that they
may be charged with and tried together by virtue of the provisions of
section 223, the offences may be inquired into or tried by any Court
competent to inquire into or try and of the offences.
185.Power to order cases to be tried in different sessions divisions.-
Notwithstanding anything contained in the preceding provisions of this
Chapter, the State Government may direct that any cases or class of cases
committed for trial in any district may be tried in any sessions division:
Provided that such direction is not repugnant to any direction previously
issued by the High Court or the Supreme Court under the Constitution, or
under this Code or any other law for the time being in force.
186.High Court to decide, in case of doubt, district where inquiry or
trial shall take place.- Where two or more Courts have taken cognizance
of the same offence and a question arises as to which of them ought to
inquire into or try that offence, the question shall be decided -
(a) if the Courts are subordinate to the same High Court, by that High
Court;
(b) if the Courts are not subordinate to the same High Court, by the High
Court within the local limits of whose appellate criminal jurisdiction the
proceedings were first commenced,and thereupon all other proceedings in
respect of that offence shall be discontinued.
187.Power to issue summons or warrant for offence committed beyond local
jurisdiction.- (1) When a Magistrate of the first class sees reason to
believe that any person within his local jurisdiction has committed outside
such jurisdiction (whether within or outside India) an offence which cannot,
under the provisions of sections 177 to 185 (both inclusive), or any other
law for the time being in force, be inquired into or tried within such
jurisdiction but is under some law for the time being in force triable in
India, such Magistrate may inquire into the offence as if it had been
committed within such local jurisdiction and compel such person in the
manner hereinbefore provided to appear before him, and send such person to
the Magistrate having jurisdiction to inquire into or try such offence, or,
if such offence is not punishable with death or imprisonment for life and
such person is ready and willing to give bail to the satisfaction of the
Magistrate acting under this section, take a bond with or without sureties
for his appearance before the Magistrate having such jurisdiction.
(2) When there are more Magistrates than one having such jurisdiction and
the Magistrate acting under this section cannot satisfy himself as to the
Magistrate to or before whom such person should be sent or bound to appear,
the case shall be reported for the orders of the High Court.
188.Offence committed outside India.- When an offence is committed
outside India -
(a) by a citizen of India, whether on the high seas or elsewhere; or
(b) by a person, not being such citizen, on any ship or aircraft registered
in India,
he may be dealt with in respect of such offence as if it had been committed
at any place within India at which he may be found:
Provided that, notwithstanding anything in any of the preceding sections of
this Chapter, no such offence shall be inquired into or tried in India
except with the previous sanction of the Central Government.
189.Receipt of evidence relating to offences committed outside India.-
When any offence alleged to have been committed in a territory outside India
is being inquired into or tried under the provisions of section 188, the
Central Government may, if it thinks fit, direct that copies of depositions
made or exhibits produced before a Judicial officer in or for that territory
or before a diplomatic or consular representative of India in or for that
territory shall be received as evidence by the Court holding such inquiry or
trial in any case in which such Court might issue a commission for taking
evidence as to the matters to which such depositions or exhibits relate.
CHAPTER XIV
CONDITIONS REQUISITE FOR INITIATION OF PROCEEDING
190.Cognizance of
offences by Magistrates.-
(1) Subject to the provisions of this Chapter, any Magistrate of the first
class, and any Magistrate of the second class specially empowered in this
behalf under sub-section (2), may take cognizance of any offence -
(a) upon receiving a complaint of facts which constitute such offence;
(b) upon a police report of such facts;
(c) upon information received from any person other than a police officer,
or upon his own knowledge, that such offence has been committed.
(2) The Chief Judicial Magistrate may empower any Magistrate of the second
class to take cognizance under sub-section (1) of such offences as are
within his competence to inquire into or try.
191.Transfer on application of the accused.- When a Magistrate takes
cognizance of an offence under clause (c) of sub-section (1) of section 190,
the accused shall, before any evidence is taken, be informed that he is
entitled to have the case inquired into or tried by another Magistrate, and
if the accused or any of the accused, if there be more than one, objects to
further proceedings before the Magistrate taking cognizance, the case shall
be transferred to such other Magistrate as may be specified by the Chief
Judicial Magistrate in this behalf.
192.Making over of cases to Magistrates.- (1) Any Chief Judicial
Magistrate may, after taking cognizance of an offence, make over the case
for inquiry or trial to any competent Magistrate subordinate to him.
(2) Any Magistrate of the first class empowered in this behalf by the Chief
Judicial Magistrate may, after taking cognizance of an offence, make over
the case for inquiry or trial to such other competent Magistrate as the
Chief Judicial Magistrate may, by general or special order, specify, and
thereupon such Magistrate may hold the inquiry or trial.
193.Cognizance of offences by Courts of Session.- Except as otherwise
expressly provided by this Code or by any other law for the time being in
force, no Court of Session shall take cognizance of any offence as a Court
of original jurisdiction unless the case has been committed to it by a
Magistrate under this Code.
194.Additional and Assistant Sessions Judges to try cases made over to
them.- As Additional Sessions Judge or Assistant Sessions Judge shall
try such cases as the Sessions Judge of the division may, by general or
special order, make over to him for trial or as the High Court may, by
special order, direct him to try.
195.Prosecution for contempt of lawful authority of public servants, for
offences against public justice and for offences relating to documents given
in evidence.- (1) No Court shall take cognizance-
(a) (I) of any offence punishable under sections 172 to 188 (both inclusive)
of the Indian Penal Code,(45 of 1860) or
(ii) of any abetment of, or attempt to commit, such offence, or
(iii) of any criminal conspiracy to commit such offence,
except on the complaint in writing of the public servant concerned or of
some other public servant to whom he is administratively subordinate;
(b) (I) of any offence punishable under any of the following sections of the
Indian Penal Code,(45 of 1860) namely, sections 193 to 196 (both inclusive),
199, 200, 205 to 211 (both inclusive) and 228, when such offence is alleged
to have been committed in, or in relation to, any proceeding in any Court,
or
(ii) of any offence described in section 463, or punishable under section
471, section 475 or section 476, of the said Code, when such offence is
alleged to have been committed in respect of a document produced or given in
evidence in a proceeding in any Court, or
(iii) of any criminal conspiracy to commit, or attempt to commit, or the
abetment of, any offence specified in sub-clause (I) or sub-clause (ii),
except on the complaint in writing of that Court, or of some other Court to
which that Court is subordinate.
(2) Where a complaint has been made by a public servant under clause (a) of
sub-section (1) any authority to which he is administratively subordinate
may order the withdrawal of the complaint and send a copy of such order to
the Court; and upon its receipt by the Court, no further proceedings shall
be taken on the complaint:
Provided that no such withdrawal shall be ordered if the trial in the Court
of first instance has been concluded.
(3) In clause (b) of sub-section (1), the term "Court" means a Civil,
Revenue or Criminal Court, and includes a tribunal constituted by or under a
Central, Provincial or State Act if declared by that Act to be a Court for
the purposes of this section.
(4) For the purposes of clause (b) of sub-section (1), a Court shall be
deemed to be subordinate to the Court to which appeals ordinarily lie from
the appealable decrees or sentences of such former Court, or in the case of
a Civil Court from whose decrees no appeal ordinarily lies, to the Principal
Court having ordinary original civil jurisdiction within whose local
jurisdiction such Civil Court is situate:
Provided that-
(a) where appeals lie to more than one Court, the Appellate Court of
inferior jurisdiction shall be the Court to which such Court shall be deemed
to be subordinate;
(b) where appeals lie to a Civil and also to a Revenue Court, such Court
shall be deemed to be subordinate to the Civil or Revenue Court according to
the nature of the case or proceeding in connection with which the offence is
alleged to have been committed.
196.Prosecution for offences against the State and for criminal
conspiracy to commit such offence.- (1) No Court shall take cognizance
of -
(a) any offence punishable under Chapter VI or under section 153A, section
153B, section 295A or section 505 of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860) or
(b) a criminal conspiracy to commit such offence, or
(c)any such abetment, as is described in section 108A of the Indian Penal
Code,
(45 of 1860)
except with the previous sanction of the Central Government or of the State
Government.
(2) No Court shall take cognizance of the offence of any criminal conspiracy
punishable under section 120B of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860) other
than a criminal conspiracy to commit a cognizable offence punishable with
death, imprisonment for life or rigorous imprisonment for a term of two
years or upwards, unless the State Government or the District Magistrate has
consented in writing to the initiation of the proceedings:
Provided that where the criminal conspiracy is one to which the provisions
of section 195 apply, no such consent shall be necessary.
(3) The Central Government or the State Government may, before according
sanction under sub-section (1) and the State Government or the District
Magistrate may, before giving consent under sub-section (2), order a
preliminary investigation by a police officer not being below the rank of
Inspector, in which case such police officer shall have the powers referred
to in sub-section (3) of section 155.
197.Prosecution of Judges and public servants.- (1) When any person
who is or was a Judge or Magistrate or a public servant not removable from
his office save by or with the sanction of the Government is accused of any
offence alleged to have been committed by him while acting or purporting to
act in the discharge of his official duty, no Court shall take cognizance of
such offence except with the previous sanction-
(a) in the case of a person who is employed or, as the case may be, was at
the time of commission of the alleged offence employed, in connection with
the affairs of the Union, of the Central Government;
(b) in the case of a person who is employed or, as the case may be, was at
the time of commission of the alleged offence employed, in connection with
the affairs of a State, of the State Government.
(2) No Court shall take cognizance of any offence alleged to have been
committed by any member of the Armed Forces of the Union while acting or
purporting to act in the discharge of his official duty, except with the
previous sanction of the Central Government.
(3) The State Government may, by notification, direct that the provisions of
sub-section (2) shall apply to such class or category of the members of the
Forces charged with the maintenance of public order as may be specified
therein, wherever they may be serving, and thereupon the provisions of that
sub-section will apply as if for the expression "Central Government"
occurring therein, the expression "State Government" were substituted.
(4) The Central Government or the State Government, as the case may be, may
determine the person by whom, the manner in which, and the offence or
offences for which, the prosecution of such Judge, Magistrate or public
servant is to be conducted, and may specify the Court before which the trial
is to be held.
198.Prosecution for offences against marriage.- (1) No Court shall
take cognizance of an offence punishable under Chapter XX of the Indian
Penal Code(45 of 1860) except upon a complaint made by some person aggrieved
by the offence:
Provided that-
(a) where such person is under the age of eighteen years, or is an idiot or
a lunatic, or is from sickness or infirmity unable to make a complaint, or
is a woman who, according to the local customs and manners, ought not to be
compelled to appear in public, some other person may, with the leave of the
Court, make a complaint on his or her behalf;
(b) where such person is the husband and he is serving in any of the Armed
Forces of the Union under conditions which are certified by his Commanding
Officer as precluding him from obtaining leave of absence to enable him to
make a complaint in person, some other person authorised by the husband in
accordance with the provisions of sub-section (4) may make a complaint on
his behalf;
(c) where the person aggrieved by an offence punishable under section 494 of
the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860) is the wife, complaint may be made on her
behalf by her father, mother, brother, sister, son or daughter or by her
father's or mother's brother or sister.
(2) For the purposes of sub-section (1), no person other than the husband of
the woman shall be deemed to be aggrieved by any offence punishable under
section 497 or section 498 of the said Code:
Provided that in the absence of the husband, some person who had care of the
woman on his behalf at the time when such offence was committed may, with
the leave of the Court, make a complaint on his behalf.
(3) When in any case falling under clause (a) of the proviso to sub-section
(1), the complaint is sought to be made on behalf of a person under the age
of eighteen years or of a lunatic by a person who has not been appointed or
declared by a competent authority to be the guardian of the person of the
minor or lunatic, and the Court is satisfied that there is a guardian so
appointed or declared, the Court shall, before granting the application for
leave, cause notice to be given to such guardian and give him a reasonable
opportunity of being heard.
(4) The authorisation referred to in clause (b) of the proviso to
sub-section (1), shall be in writing, shall be signed or otherwise attested
by the husband, shall contain a statement to the effect that he has been
informed of the allegations upon which the complaint is to be founded, shall
be countersigned by his Commanding Officer, and shall be accompanied by a
certificate signed by that Officer to the effect that leave of absence for
the purpose of making a complaint in person cannot for the time being be
granted to the husband.
(5) Any document purporting to be such an authorisation and complying with
the provisions of sub-section (4), and any document purporting to be a
certificate required by that sub-section shall, unless the contrary is
proved, be presumed to be genuine and shall be received in evidence.
(6) No Court shall take cognizance of an offence under section 376 of the
Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860) where such offence consists of sexual
inter-course by a man with his own wife, the wife being under fifteen years
of age, if more than one year has elapsed from the date of the commission of
the offence.
(7) The provisions of this section apply to the abetment of, or attempt to
commit, an offence as they apply to the offence.
199.Prosecution for defamation.- (1) No Court shall take cognizance
of an offence punishable under Chapter XXI of the Indian Penal Code(45 of
1860) except upon a complaint made by some person aggrieved by the offence:
Provided that where such person is under the age of eighteen years, or is an
idiot or a lunatic, or is from sickness or infirmity unable to make a
complaint, or is a woman who, according to the local customs and manners,
ought not to be compelled to appear in public, some other person may, with
the leave of the Court, make a complaint on his or her behalf.
(2) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Code, when any offence
falling under Chapter XXI of the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860) is alleged to
have been committed against a person who, at the time of such commission, is
the President of India, the Vice-President of India, the Governor of a
State, the Administrator of a Union territory or a Minister of the Union or
of a State or of a Union territory, or any other public servant employed in
connection with the affairs of the Union or of a State in respect of his
conduct in the discharge of his public functions a Court of Session may take
cognizance of such offence, without the case being committed to it, upon a
complaint in writing made by the Public Prosecutor.
(3) Every complaint referred to in sub-section (2) shall set forth the facts
which constitute the offence alleged, the nature of such offence and such
other particulars as are reasonably sufficient to give notice to the accused
of the offence alleged to have been committed by him.
(4) No complaint under sub-section (2) shall be made by the Public
Prosecutor except with the previous sanction-
(a) of the State Government, in the case of a person who is or has been the
Governor of that State or a Minister of that Government;
(b) of the State Government, in the case of any other public servant
employed in connection with the affairs of the State;
(c) of the Central Government, in any other case.
(5) No Court of Session shall take cognizance of an offence under
sub-section (2) unless the complaint is made within six months from the date
on which the offence is alleged to have been committed.
(6) Nothing in this section shall affect the right of the person against
whom the offence is alleged to have been committed, to make a complaint in
respect of that offence before a Magistrate having jurisdiction or the power
of such Magistrate to take cognizance of the offence upon such complaint
CHAPTER XV
COMPLAINTS TO MAGISTRATES
200.Examination of
complainant.-
A Magistrate taking cognizance of an offence on complaint shall examine upon
oath the complainant and the witnesses present, if any, and the substance of
such examination shall be reduced to writing and shall be signed by the
complainant and the witnesses, and also by the Magistrate:
Provided that, when the complaint is made in writing, the Magistrate need
not examine the complainant and the witnesses-
(a) if a public servant acting or purporting to act in the discharge of his
official duties or a Court has made the complainant; or
(b) if the Magistrate makes over the case for inquiry or trial to another
Magistrate under section 192:
Provided further that if the Magistrate makes over the case to another
Magistrate under section 192 after examining the complainant and the
witnesses, the latter Magistrate need not re-examine them.
201.Procedure by Magistrate not competent to take cognizance of the case.-
If the complaint is made to a Magistrate who is not competent to take
cognizance of the offence, he shall, -
(a) if the complaint is in writing, return it for presentation to the proper
Court with an endorsement to that effect;
(b) if the complaint is not in writing, direct the complainant to the proper
Court.
202.Postponement of issue of process.- (1) Any Magistrate , on
receipt of a complaint of an offence of which he is authorised to take
cognizance or which has been made over to him under section 192, may, if he
thinks fit, postpone the issue of process against the accused, and either
inquire into the case himself or direct an investigation to be made by a
police officer or by such other person as he thinks fit, for the purpose of
deciding whether or not there is sufficient ground for proceeding:
Provided that no such direction for investigation shall be made, -
(a) where it appears to the Magistrate that the offence complained of is
triable exclusively by the Court of Session; or
(b) where the complaint has not been made by a Court, unless the complainant
and the witnesses present (if any) have been examined on oath under section
200.
(2) In an inquiry under sub-section (1), the Magistrate may, if he thinks
fit, take evidence of witnesses on oath:
Provided that if it appears to the Magistrate that the offence complained of
is triable exclusively by the Court of Session, he shall call upon the
complainant to produce all his witnesses and examine them on oath.
(3) If an investigation under sub-section (1) is made by a person not being
a police officer, he shall have for that investigation all the powers
conferred by this Code on an officer in charge of a police station except
the power to arrest without warrant.
203.Dismissal of complaint.- If, after considering the statements on
oath (if any) of the complainant and of the witnesses and the result of the
inquiry or investigation (if any) under section 202, the Magistrate is of
opinion that there is no sufficient ground for proceeding, he shall dismiss
the complaint, and in every such case he shall briefly record his reasons
for so doing.
CHAPTER XVI
COMMENCEMENT OF PROCEEDINGS BEFORE MAGISTRATES
204.Issue of
process.- (1)
If in the opinion of a Magistrate taking cognizance of an offence there is
sufficient ground for proceeding, and the case appears to be -
(a) a summons-case, he shall issue his summons for the attendance of the
accused, or
(b) a warrant-case, he may issue a warrant, or, if he thinks fit, a summons,
for causing the accused to be brought or to appear at a certain time before
such Magistrate or (if he has no jurisdiction himself) some other Magistrate
having jurisdiction.
(2) No summons or warrant shall be issued against the accused under
sub-section (1) until a list of the prosecution witnesses has been filed.
(3) In a proceeding instituted upon a complaint made in writing, every
summons or warrant issued under sub-section (1) shall be accompanied by a
copy of such complaint.
(4) When by any law for the time being in force any process-fees or other
fees are payable, no process shall be issued until the fees are paid and, if
such fees are not paid within a reasonable time, the Magistrate may dismiss
the complaint.
(5) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to affect the provisions of
section 87.
205.Magistrate may dispense with personal attendance of accused.- (1)
Whenever a Magistrate issues a summons, he may, if he sees reason so to do,
dispense with the personal attendance of the accused and permit him to
appear by his pleader.
(2) But the Magistrate inquiring into or trying the case may, in his
discretion, at any stage of the proceedings, direct the personal attendance
of the accused, and, if necessary, enforce such attendance in the manner
hereinbefore provided.
206.Special summons in cases of petty offence.- (1) If, in the
opinion of a Magistrate taking cognizance of a petty offence, the case may
be summarily disposed of under section 260, the Magistrate shall, except
where he is, for reasons to be recorded in writing of a contrary opinion,
issue summons to the accused requiring him either to appear in person or by
pleader before the Magistrate on a specified date, or if he desires to plead
guilty to the charge without appearing before the Magistrate, to transmit
before the specified date, by post or by messenger to the Magistrate, the
said plea in writing and the amount of fine specified in the summons or if
he desires to appear by pleader and to plead guilty to the charge through
such pleader, to authorise, in writing, the pleader to plead guilty to the
charge on his behalf and to pay the fine through such pleader:
Provided that the amount of the fine specified in such summons shall not
exceed one hundred rupees.
(2) For the purposes of this section, "petty offence" means any offence
punishable only with fine not exceeding one thousand rupees, but does not
include any offence so punishable under the Motor Vehicles Act, 1939, (4 of
1939) or under any other law which provides for convicting the accused
person in his absence on a plea of guilty.
207.Supply to the accused of copy of police report and other documents.-
In any case where the proceeding has been instituted on a police report, the
Magistrate shall without delay furnish to the accused, free of cost, a copy
of each of the following:-
(I) the police report;
(ii) the first information report recorded under section 154;
(iii) the statements recorded under sub-section (3) of section 161 of all
persons whom the prosecution proposes to examine as its witnesses, excluding
therefrom any part in regard to which a request for such exclusion has been
made by the police officer under sub-section (6) of section 173;
(iv) the confessions and statements, if any, recorded under section 164;
(v) any other document or relevant extract thereof forwarded to the
Magistrate with the police report under sub-section (5) of section 173:
Provided that the Magistrate may, after perusing any such part of a
statement as is referred to in clause (iii) and considering the reasons
given by the police officer for the request, direct that a copy of that part
of the statement or of such portion thereof as the Magistrate thinks proper,
shall be furnished to the accused:
Provided further that if the Magistrate is satisfied that any document
referred to in clause (v) is voluminous, he shall, instead of furnishing the
accused with a copy thereof, direct that he will only be allowed to inspect
it either personally or through pleader in Court.
208.Supply of copies of statements and documents to accused in other
cases triable by Court of Session.- Where, in a case instituted
otherwise than on a police report, it appears to the Magistrate issuing
process under section 204 that the offence is triable exclusively by the
Court of Session, the Magistrate shall without delay furnish to the accused,
free of cost, a copy of each of the following:-
(i) the statements recorded under section 200 or section 202, of all persons
examined by the Magistrate;
(ii) the statements and confessions, if any, recorded under section 161 or
section 164;
(iii) any documents produced before the Magistrate on which the prosecution
proposes to rely:
Provided that if the Magistrate is satisfied that any such document is
voluminous, he shall, instead of furnishing the accused with a copy thereof,
direct that he will only be allowed to inspect it either personally or
through pleader in Court.
209.Commitment of case to Court of Session when offence is triable
exclusively by it.- When in a case instituted on a police report or
otherwise, the accused appears or is brought before the Magistrate and it
appears to the Magistrate that the offence is triable exclusively by the
Court of Session, he shall-
(a) commit the case to the Court of Session;
(b) subject to the provisions of this Code relating to bail, remand the
accused to custody during, and until the conclusion of, the trial;
(c) send to that Court the record of the case and the documents and
articles, if any, which are to be produced in evidence;
(d) notify the Public Prosecutor of the commitment of the case to the Court
of Session.
210.Procedure to be followed when there is a complaint case and police
investigation in respect of the same offence.- (1) When in a case
instituted otherwise than on a police report (hereinafter referred to as a
complaint case), it is made to appear to the Magistrate, during the course
of the inquiry or trial held by him, that an investigation by the police is
in progress in relation to the offence which is the subject-matter of the
inquiry or trial held by him, the Magistrate shall stay the proceedings of
such inquiry or trial and call for a report on the matter from the police
officer conducting the investigation.
(2) If a report is made by the investigating police officer under section
173 and on such report cognizance of any offence is taken by the Magistrate
against any person who is an accused in the complaint case, the Magistrate
shall inquire into or try together the complaint case and the case arising
out of the police report as if both the cases were instituted on a police
report.
(3) If the police report does not relate to any accused in the complaint
case or if the Magistrate does not take cognizance of any offence on the
police report, he shall proceed with the inquiry or trial, which was stayed
by him, in accordance with the provisions of this Code.
CHAPTER
XVII
THE CHARGE
A.- Form of
charges
211.Contents of charge.-
(1) Every charge under this Code shall state the offence with which the
accused is charged.
(2) If the law which creates the offence gives it any specific name, the
offence may be described in the charge by that name only.
(3) If the law which creates the offence does not give it any specific name,
so much of the definition of the offence must be stated as to give the
accused notice of the matter with which he is charged.
(4) The law and section of the law against which the offence is said to have
been committed shall be mentioned in the charge.
(5) The fact that the charge is made is equivalent to a statement that every
legal condition required by law to constitute the offence charged was
fulfilled in the particular case.
(6) The charge shall be written in the language of the Court.
(7) If the accused, having been previously convicted of any offence, is
liable, by reason of such previous conviction, to enhanced punishment, or to
punishment of a different kind, for a subsequent offence, and it is intended
to prove such previous conviction for the purpose of affecting the
punishment which the Court may think fit to award for the subsequent
offence, the fact, date and place of the previous conviction shall be stated
in the charge; and if such statement has been omitted, the Court may add it
at any time before sentence is passed.
Illustrations
(a) A is charged with the murder of B.This is equivalent to a statement that
A's act fell within the definition of murder given in section 299 and 300 of
the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860); that it did not fall within any of the
general exceptions of the said Code; and that it did not fall within any of
the five exceptions to section 300, or that, if it did fall within Exception
1, one or other of the three provisos to that exception applied to it.
(b) A is charged under section 326 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860) with
voluntarily causing grievous hurt to B by means of an instrument for
shooting.This is equivalent to a statement that the case was not provided
for by section 335 of the said Code, and that the general exceptions did not
apply to it.
(c) A is accused of murder, cheating, theft, extortion, adultery or criminal
intimidation, or using a false property-mark.The charge may state that A
committed murder, or cheating, or theft, or extortion,
or adultery, or criminal intimidation, or that he used a false
property-mark, without reference to the definitions of those crime contained
in the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860); but the sections under which the
offence is punishable must, in each instance, be referred to in the charge.
(d) A is charged under section 184 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860) with
intentionally obstructing a sale of property offered for sale by the lawful
authority of a public servant.The charge should be in those words.
212.Particulars as to time, place and person.- (1) The charge shall
contain such particulars as to the time and place of the alleged offence,
and the person (if any) against whom, or the thing (if any) in respect of
which, it was committed, as are reasonably sufficient to give the accused
notice of the matter with which he is charged.
(2) When the accused is charged with criminal breach of trust or dishonest
misappropriation of money or other movable property, it shall be sufficient
to specify the gross sum or, as the case may be, describe the movable
property in respect of which the offence is alleged to have been committed,
and the dates between which the offence is alleged to have been committed,
without specifying particular items or exact dates, and the charge so framed
shall be deemed to be a charge of one offence within the meaning of section
219:
Provided that the time included between the first and last of such dates
shall not exceed one year.
213.When manner of committing offence must be stated.- When the
nature of the case is such that the particulars mentioned in sections 211
and 212 do not give the accused sufficient notice of the matter with which
he is charged, the charge shall also contain such particulars of the manner
in which the alleged offence was committed as will be sufficient for that
purpose.
Illustrations
(a) A is accused of the theft of a certain article at a certain time and
place.The charge need not set out the manner in which the theft was
effected.
(b) A is accused of cheating B at a given time and place.The charge must set
out the manner in which A cheated B.
(c) A is accused of giving false evidence at a given time and place.The
charge must set out that portion of the evidence given by A which is alleged
to be false.
(d) A is accused of obstructing B, a public servant, in the discharge of his
public functions at a given time and place.The charge must set out the
manner in which A obstructed B in the discharge of his functions.
(e) A is accused of the murder B at a given time and place.The charge need
not state the manner in which A murdered B.
(f) A is accused of disobeying a direction of the law with intent to save B
from punishment.The charge must set out the disobedience charged and the law
infringed.
214.Words in charge taken in sense of law under which offence is
punishable.- In every charge words used in describing an offence shall
be deemed to have been used in the sense attached to them respectively by
the law under which such offence is punishable.
215.Effect of errors.- No error in stating either the offence or the
particulars required to be stated in the charge, and no omission to state
the offence or those particulars, shall be regarded at any stage of the case
as material, unless the accused was in fact misled by such error or
omission, and it has occasioned a failure of justice.
Illustrations
(a) A is charged under section 242 of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860.)
with "having been in possession of counterfeit coin, having known at the
time when he became possessed thereof that such coin was counterfeit", the
word "fraudulently" being omitted in the charge.Unless it appears that A was
in fact misled by this omission, the error shall not be regarded as
material.
(b) A is charged with cheating B, and the manner in which he cheated B is
not set out in the charge, or is set out incorrectly.A defends himself,
calls witnesses and gives his own account of the transaction.The Court may
infer from this that the omission to set out the manner of the cheating is
not material.
(c) A is charged with cheating B, and the manner in which he cheated B is
not set out in the charge.There were many transactions between A and B, and
A had no means of knowing to which of them the charge referred, and offered
no defence.The Court may infer from such facts that the omission to set out
the manner of the cheating was, in the case, a material error.
(d) A is charged with the murder of Khoda Baksh on the 21st January, 1882.In
fact, the murdered person's name was Haidar Baksh, and the date of the
murder was the 20th January, 1882.A was never charged with any murder but
one, and had heard the inquiry before the Magistrate, which referred
exclusively to the case of Haidar Baksh.The Court may infer from these facts
that A was not misled, and that the error in the charge was immaterial.
(e) A was charged with murdering Haidar Baksh on the 20th January, 1882, and
Khoda Baksh (who tried to arrest him for that murder) on the 21st January,
1882.When charged for the murder of Haidar Baksh, he was tried for the
murder of Khoda Baksh.The witnesses present in his defence were witnesses in
the case of Haidar Baksh.The Court may infer from this that A was misled,
and that the error was material.
216.Court may alter charge.- (1) Any Court may alter or add to any
charge at any time before judgment is pronounced.
(2) Every such alteration or addition shall be read and explained to the
accused.
(3) If the alteration or addition to a charge is such that proceeding
immediately with the trial is not likely, in the opinion of the Court, to
prejudice the accused in his defence or the prosecutor in the conduct of the
case, the Court may, in its discretion, after such alteration or addition
has been made, proceed with the trial as if the altered or added charge had
been the original charge.
(4) If the alteration or addition is such that proceeding immediately with
the trial is likely, in the opinion of the Court, to prejudice the accused
or the prosecutor as aforesaid, the Court may either direct a new trial or
adjourn the trial for such period as may be necessary.
(5) If the offence stated in the altered or added charge is one for the
prosecution of which previous sanction is necessary, the case shall not be
proceeded with until such sanction is obtained, unless sanction has been
already obtained for a prosecution on the same facts as those on which the
altered or added charge is founded.
217.Recall of witnesses when charge altered.- Whenever a charge is
altered or added to by the Court after the commencement of the trial, the
prosecutor and the accused shall be allowed –
(a) to recall or re-summon, and examine with reference to such alteration or
addition, any witness who may have been examined, unless the Court, for
reasons to be recorded in writing, considers that the prosecutor or the
accused, as the case may be, desires to recall or re-examine such witness
for the purpose of vexation or delay or for defeating the ends of justice;
(b) also to call any further witness whom the Court may think to be
material.
B.- Joinder of charges
218.Separate charges for distinct offences.- (1) For every distinct
offence of which any person is accused there shall be a separate charge, and
every such charge shall be tried separately:
Provided that where the accused person, by an application in writing, so
desires and the Magistrate is of opinion that such person is not likely to
be prejudiced thereby, the Magistrate may try together all or any number of
the charges framed against such person.
(2) Nothing in sub-section (1) shall affect the operation of the provisions
of sections 219, 220, 221 and 223.
Illustration
A is accused of a theft on one occasion, and of causing grievous hurt on
another occasion.A must be separately charged and separately tried for the
theft and causing grievous hurt.
219.Three offences of same kind within year may be charged together.-
(1) When a person is accused of more offences than one of the same kind
committed within the space of twelve months from the first to the last of
such offences, whether in respect of the same person or not, he may be
charged with, and tried at one trial for, any number of them not exceeding
three.
(2) Offences are of the same kind when they are punishable with the same
amount of punishment under the same section of the Indian Penal Code or of
any special or local law:
Provided that, for the purposes of this section, an offence punishable under
section 379 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860) shall be deemed to be an
offence of the same kind as an offence punishable under section 380 of the
said Code,(45 of 1860) and that an offence punishable under any section of
the said Code, or of any special or local law, shall be deemed to be an
offence of the same kind as an attempt to commit such offence, when such an
attempt is an offence.
220.Trial for more than one offence.- (1) If, in one series of acts
so connected together as to form the same transaction, more offences than
one are committed by the same person, he may be charged with, and tried at
one trial for, every such offence.
(2) When a person charged with one or more offences of criminal breach of
trust or dishonest misappropriation of property as provided in sub-section
(2) of section 212 or in sub-section (1) of section 219, is accused of
committing, for the purpose of facilitating or concealing the commission of
that offence or those offences, one or more offences of falsification of
accounts, he may be charged with, and tried at one trial for, every such
offence.
(3) If the acts alleged constitute an offence falling within two or more
separate definitions of any law in force for the time being by which
offences are defined or punished, the person accused of them may be charged
with, and tried at one trial for, each of such offences.
(4) If several acts, of which one or more than one would by itself or
themselves constitute an offence, constitute when combined a different
offence, the person accused of them may be charged with, and tried at one
trial for the offence constituted by such acts when combined, and for any
offence constituted by any one, or more, of such acts.
(5) Nothing contained in this section shall affect section 71 of the Indian
Penal Code(45 of 1860).
Illustrations to sub-section (1)
(a) A rescues B, a person in lawful custody, and in so doing causes grievous
hurt to C, a constable in whose custody B was.A may be charged with, and
convicted of, offences under sections 225 and 333 of the Indian Penal
Code(45 of 1860).
(b) A commits house-breaking by day with intent to commit adultery, and
commits, in the house so entered, adultery with B's wife.A may be separately
charged with, and convicted of, offences under sections 454 and 497 of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860).
(c) A entices B, the wife of C, away from C, with intent to commit adultery
with B, and then commits adultery with her.A may be separately charged with
, and convicted of, offences under sections 498 and 497 of the Indian Penal
Code(45 of 1860).
(d) A has in his possession several seals, knowing them to be counterfeit
and intending to use them for the purpose of committing several forgeries
punishable under section 466 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860).A may be
separately charged with, and convicted of, the possession of each seal under
section 473 of the Indian Penal Code.
(e) With intent to cause injury to B, A institutes a criminal proceeding
against him, knowing that there is no just or lawful ground for such
proceeding, and also falsely accuses B of having committed an offence,
knowing that there is no just or lawful ground for such charge.A may be
separately charged with, and convicted of, two offences under section 211 of
the Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860).
(f) A, with intent to cause injury to B, falsely accuses him of having
committed an offence, knowing that there is no just or lawful ground for
such charge.On the trial, A gives false evidence against B, intending
thereby to cause B to be convicted of a capital offence.A may be separately
charged with, and convicted of, offences under sections 211 and 194 of the
Indian Penal Code(45 of 1860).
(g) A, with six others, commits the offences of rioting, grievous hurt and
assaulting a public servant endeavouring in the discharge of his duty as
such to suppress the riot.A may be separately charged with, and convicted of
offences under sections 147, 325 and 152 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of
1860).
(h) A threatens B, C and D at the same time with injury to their persons
with intent to cause alarm to them.A may be separately charged with, and
convicted of, each of the three offences under section 506 of the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860).
The separate charges referred to in Illustrations (a) to (h), respectively,
may be tried at the same time.
(I) Where it is doubtful what offence has been committed.- A wrongfully
strikes B with a cane.A may be separately charged with and convicted of,
offences under sections 352 and 323 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860).
(j) Several stolen sacks of corn are made over to A and B, who knew they are
stolen property, for the purpose of concealing them.A and B thereupon
voluntarily assist each other to conceal the sacks at the bottom of a
grain-pit.A and B may be separately charged with, and convicted of, offences
under sections 41 and 414 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860).
(k) A exposes her child with the knowledge that she is thereby likely to
cause its death.The child dies in consequence of such exposure.A may be
separately charged with and convicted of, offences under sections 317 and
304 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860).
(l) A dishonestly uses a forged document as genuine evidence, in order to
convict B, a public servant, of an offence under section 167 of the Indian
Penal Code(45 of 1860).A may be separately charged with, and convicted of,
offences under sections 471 (read with section 466) and 196 of that Code.
Illustration to sub-section (4)
(m) A commits robbery on B, and in doing so voluntarily causes hurt to him.A
may be separately charged with, and convicted of, offences under sections
323, 392 and 394 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860).
221.(1) If a single act or series of acts is of such a nature that it is
doubtful which of several offences the facts which can be proved will
constitute, the accused may be charged with having committed all or any of
such offences , and any number of such charges may be tried at once; or he
may be charged in the alternative with having committed some one of the said
offences.
(2) If in such a case the accused is charged with one offence, and it
appears in evidence that he committed a different offence for which he might
have been charged under the provisions of sub-section (1), he may be
convicted of the offence which he is shown to have committed, although he
was not charged with it.
Illustrations
(a) A is accused of an act which may amount to theft, or receiving stolen
property, or criminal breach of trust or cheating.He may be charged with
theft, receiving stolen property, criminal breach of trust and cheating, or
he may be charged with having committed theft, or receiving stolen property,
or criminal breach of trust or cheating.
(b) In the case mentioned, A is only charged with theft.It appears that he
committed the offence of criminal breach of trust, or that of receiving
stolen goods.He may be convicted of criminal breach of trust or of receiving
stolen goods (as the case may be), though he was not charged with such
offence.
(c) A states on oath before the Magistrate that he saw B hit C with a
club.Before the Sessions Court A states on oath that B never hit C.A may be
charged in the alternative and convicted of
intentionally giving false evidence, although it cannot be proved which of
these contradictory statements was false.
222.When offence proved included in offence charged.- (1) When a
person is charged with an offence consisting of several particulars, a
combination of some only of which constitutes a complete minor offence, and
such combination is proved, but the remaining particulars are not proved, he
may be convicted of the minor offence, though he was not charged with it.
(2) When a person is charged with an offence and facts are proved which
reduce it to a minor offence, he may be convicted of the minor offence,
although he is not charged with it.
(3) When a person is charged with an offence, he may be convicted of an
attempt to commit such offence although the attempt is not separately
charged.
(4) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to authorise a conviction of any
minor offence where the conditions requisite for the initiation of
proceedings in respect of that minor offence have not been satisfied.
Illustrations
(a) A is charged, under section 407 of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860)
with criminal breach of trust in respect of property entrusted to him as a
carrier.It appears, that he did commit criminal breach of trust under
section 406 of that Code in respect of the property, but that it was not
entrusted to him as a carrier.He may be convicted of criminal breach of
trust under the said section 406.
(b) A is charged, under section 325 of the Indian Penal Code, with causing
grievous hurt.He proves that he acted on grave and sudden provocation.he may
be convicted under section 335 of that Code (45 of 1860).
223.What persons may be charged jointly.- The following persons may
be charged and tried together, namely:-
(a) persons accused of the same offence committed in the course of the same
transaction;
(b) persons accused of an offence and persons accused of abetment of, or
attempt to commit, such offence;
(c) persons accused of more than one offence of the same kind, within the
meaning of section 219 committed by them jointly within the period of twelve
months;
(d) persons accused of different offences committed in the course of the
same transaction;
(e) persons accused of an offence which includes theft, extortion, cheating,
or criminal misappropriation, and persons accused of receiving or retaining,
or assisting in the disposal or concealment of, property possession of which
is alleged to have been transferred by any such offence committed by the
first-named persons, or of abetment of or attempting to commit any such
last-named offence;
(f) persons accused of offences under sections 411 and 414 of the Indian
Penal Code(45 of 1860) or either of those sections in respect of stolen
property the possession of which has been transferred by one offence;
(g) Persons accused of any offence under Chapter XII of the Indian Penal
Code(45 of1860) relating to counterfeit coin and persons accused of any
other offence under the said Chapter relating to the same coin, or of
abetment of or attempting to commit any such offence; and the provisions
contained in the former part of this Chapter shall, so far as may be, apply
to all such charges:
Provided that where a number of persons are charged with separate offences
and such persons do not fall within any of the categories specified in this
section, the Magistrate may, if such persons by an application in writing,
so desire, and if he is satisfied that such persons would not be
prejudicially affected thereby, and it is expedient so to do, try all such
persons together.
224.Withdrawal of remaining charges on conviction on one of several
charges.- When a charge containing more heads than one is framed against
the same person, and when a conviction has been had on one or more of them,
the complainant, or the officer conducting the prosecution, may, with the
consent of the Court, withdraw the remaining charge or charges, or the Court
of its own accord may stay the inquiry into, or trial of, such charge or
charges and such withdrawal shall have the effect of an acquittal on such
charge or charges, unless the conviction be set aside, in which case the
said Court (subject to the order of the Court setting aside the conviction)
may proceed with the inquiry into, or trial of, the charge of charges so
withdrawn.
CHAPTER
XVIII
TRIAL BEFORE A COURT OF SESSION
225.Trial to be
conducted by Public Prosecutor.-
In every trial before a Court of Session, the prosecution shall be conducted
by a Public Prosecutor.
226.Opening case for prosecution.- When the accused appears or is
brought before the Court in pursuance of a commitment of the case under
section 209, the prosecutor shall open his case by describing the charge
brought against the accused and stating by what evidence he proposes to
prove the guilt of the accused.
227.Discharge.- If, upon consideration of the record of the case and
the documents submitted therewith, and after hearing the submissions of the
accused and the prosecution in this behalf, the Judge considers that there
is not sufficient ground for proceeding against the accused, he shall
discharge the accused and record his reasons for so doing.
228.Framing of charge.- (1) If, after such consideration and hearing
as aforesaid, the Judge, is of opinion that there is ground for presuming
that the accused has committed an offence which -
(a) is not exclusively triable by the Court of Session, he may, frame a
charge against the accused and, by order, transfer the case for trial to the
Chief Judicial Magistrate, and thereupon the Chief Judicial Magistrate shall
try the offence in accordance with the procedure for the trial of
warrant-cases instituted on a police report;
(b) is exclusively triable by the Court, he shall frame in writing a charge
against the accused.
(2) Where the Judge frames any charge under clause (b) of sub-section (1),
the charge shall be read and explained to the accused and the accused shall
be asked whether he pleads guilty of the offence charged or claims to be
tried.
229.Conviction on plea of guilty.- If the accused pleads guilty, the
Judge shall record the plea and may, in his discretion, convict him thereon.
230.Date for prosecution evidence.- If the accused refuses to plead,
or does not plead, or claims to be tried or is not convicted under section
229, the Judge shall fix a date for the examination of witnesses, and may,
on the application of the prosecution, issue any process for compelling the
attendance of any witness or the production of any document or other thing.
231.Evidence for prosecution.- (1) On the date so fixed, the Judge
shall proceed to take all such evidence as may be produced in support of the
prosecution.
(2) The Judge may, in his discretion, permit the cross-examination of any
witness to be deferred until any other witness or witnesses have been
examined or recall any witness for further cross-examination.
232.Acquittal.- If, after taking the evidence for the prosecution,
examining the accused and hearing the prosecution and the defence on the
point, the Judge considers that there is no evidence that the accused
committed the offence, the Judge shall record an order of acquittal.
233.Entering upon defence.- (1) Where the accused is not acquitted
under section 232, he shall be called upon to enter on his defence and
adduce any evidence he may have in support thereof.
(2) If the accused puts in any written statement, the Judge shall file it
with the record.
(3) If the accused applies for the issue of any process for compelling the
attendance of any witness or the production of any document or thing, the
Judge shall issue such process unless he considers, for reasons to be
recorded, that such application should be refused on the ground that it is
made for the purpose of vexation or delay or for defeating the ends of
justice.
234.Arguments.- When the examination of the witnesses (if any) for
the defence is complete, the prosecutor shall sum up his case and the
accused or his pleader shall be entitled to reply:
Provided that where any point of law is raised by the accused or his
pleader, the prosecution may, with the permission of the Judge, make his
submissions with regard to such point of law.
235.Judgment of acquittal of conviction.- (1) After hearing arguments
and points of law (if any), the Judge shall give a judgment in the case.
(2) If the accused is convicted, the Judge shall, unless he proceeds in
accordance with the provisions of section 360, hear the accused on the
questions of sentence, and then pass sentence on him according to law.
236.Previous conviction.- In a case where a previous conviction is
charged under the provisions of sub-section (7) of section 211, and the
accused does not admit that he has been previously convicted as alleged in
the charge, the Judge may, after he has convicted the said accused under
section 229 or section 235, take evidence in respect of the alleged previous
conviction, and shall record a finding thereon:
Provided that no such charge shall be read out by the Judge nor shall the
accused be asked to plead thereto nor shall the previous conviction be
referred to by the prosecution or in any evidence adduced by it, unless and
until the accused has been convicted under section 229 or section 235.
237.Procedure in cases instituted under section 199(2).- (1) A Court
of Session taking cognizance of an offence under sub-section (2) of section
199 shall try the case in accordance with the procedure for the trial of
warrant-cases instituted otherwise than on a police report before a Court of
Magistrate:
Provided that the person against whom the offence is alleged to have been
committed shall, unless the Court of Session, for reasons to be recorded,
otherwise directs, be examined as a witness for the prosecution.
(2) Every trial under this section shall be held in camera if either party
thereto so desires or if the Court thinks fit so to do.
(3) If, in any such case, the Court discharges or acquits all or any of the
accused and is of opinion that there was no reasonable cause for making the
accusation against them or any of them, it may, by its order of discharge or
acquittal, direct the person against whom the offence was alleged to have
been committed (other than the President, Vice-President or the Governor of
a State or the Administrator of a Union territory) to show cause why he
should not pay compensation to such accused or to each or any of such
accused, when there are more than one.
(4) The Court shall record and consider any cause which may be shown by the
person so directed, and if it is satisfied that there was no reasonable
cause for making the accusation, it may, for reasons to be recorded , make
an order that compensation to such amount not exceeding one thousand rupees,
as it may determine, be paid by such person to the accused or to each or any
of them.
(5) Compensation awarded under sub-section (4) shall be recovered as if it
were a fine imposed by a Magistrate.
(6) No person who has been directed to pay compensation under sub-section
(4) shall, by reason of such order, be exempted from any civil or criminal
liability in respect of the complaint made under this section:
Provided that any amount paid to an accused person under this section shall
be taken into account in awarding compensation to such person in any
subsequent civil suit relating to the same matter.
(7) The person who has been ordered under sub-section (4) to pay
compensation may appeal from the order, in so far as it relates to the
payment of compensation, to the High Court.
(8) When an order for payment of compensation to an accused person is made,
the compensation shall not be paid to him before the period allowed for the
presentation of the appeal has elapsed, or, if an appeal is presented,
before the appeal has been decided.
CHAPTER XIX
TRIAL OF WARRANT-CASES BY MAGISTRATES
A.- Cases
instituted on a police report
238.Compliance with section 207.-
When, in any warrant-case instituted on a police report, the accused appears
or is brought before a Magistrate at the commencement of the trial, the
Magistrate shall satisfy himself that he has complied with the provisions of
section 207.
239.When accused shall be discharged.- If, upon considering the
police report and the documents sent with it under section 173 and making
such examination, if any, of the accused as the Magistrate thinks necessary
and after giving the prosecution and the accused an opportunity of being
heard, the Magistrate considers the charge against the accused to be
groundless, he shall discharge the accused, and record his reasons for so
doing.
240.Framing of charge.- (1) If, upon such consideration, examination,
if any, and hearing, the Magistrate is of opinion that there is ground for
presuming that the accused has committed an offence triable under this
Chapter, which such Magistrate is competent to try and which, in his
opinion, could be adequately punished by him, he shall frame in writing a
charge against the accused.
(2) The charge shall then be read and explained to the accused, and he shall
be asked whether he pleads guilty of the offence charged or claims to be
tried.
241.Conviction on plea of guilty.- If the accused pleads guilty, the
Magistrate shall record the plea and may, in his discretion, convict him
thereon.
242.Evidence for prosecution.- (1) If the accused refuses to plead or
does not plead, or claims to be tried or the Magistrate does not convict the
accused under section 241, the Magistrate shall fix a date for the
examination of witnesses.
(2) The Magistrate may, on the application of the prosecution, issue a
summons to any of its witnesses directing him to attend or to produce any
document or other thing.
(3) On the date so fixed, the Magistrate shall proceed to take all such
evidence as may be produced in support of the prosecution:
Provided that the Magistrate may permit the cross-examination of any witness
to be deferred until any other witness or witnesses have been examined or
recall any witness for further cross-examination.
243.Evidence for defence.- (1) The accused shall then be called upon
to enter upon his defence and produce his evidence; and if the accused puts
in any written statement, the Magistrate shall file it with the record.
(2) If the accused, after he has entered upon his defence, applies to the
Magistrate to issue any process for compelling the attendance of any witness
for the purpose of examination or cross-examination, or the production of
any document or other thing, the Magistrate shall issue such process unless
he considers that such application should be refused on the ground that it
is made for the purpose of vexation or delay or for defeating the ends of
justice and such ground shall be recorded by him in writing:
Provided that, when the accused has cross-examined or had the opportunity of
cross-examining any witness before entering on his defence, the attendance
of such witness shall not be compelled under this section, unless the
Magistrate is satisfied that it is necessary for the ends of justice.
(3) The Magistrate may, before summoning any witness on an application under
sub-section (2), require that the reasonable incurred by the witness in
attending for the purposes of the trial be deposited in Court.
B.- Cases instituted otherwise than on police report
244.Evidence for prosecution.- (1) When, in any warrant-case instituted
otherwise than on a police report, the accused appears or is brought before
a Magistrate, the Magistrate shall proceed to hear the prosecution and take
all such evidence as may be produced in support of the prosecution.
(2) The Magistrate may, on the application of the prosecution, issue a
summons to any of its witnesses directing him to attend or to produce any
document or other thing.
245.When accused shall be discharged.- (1) If, upon taking all the
evidence referred to in section 244, the Magistrate considers, for reasons
to be recorded, that no case against the accused has been made out which, if
unrebutted, would warrant his conviction, the Magistrate shall discharge
him.
(2) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to prevent a Magistrate from
discharging the accused at any previous stage of the case if, for reasons to
be recorded by such Magistrate, he considers the charge to be groundless.
246.Procedure where accused is not discharged.- (1) If, when such
evidence has been taken, or at any previous stage of the case, the
Magistrate is of opinion that there is ground for presuming that the accused
has committed an offence triable under this Chapter, which such Magistrate
is competent to try and which, in his opinion, could be adequately punished
by him, he shall frame in writing a charge against the accused.
(2) The charge shall then be read and explained to the accused, and he shall
be asked whether he pleads guilty or has any defence to make.
(3) If the accused pleads guilty, the Magistrate shall record the plea, and
may, in his discretion, convict him thereon.
(4) If the accused refuses to plead, or does not plead or claims to be tried
or if the accused is not convicted under sub-section (3), he shall be
required to state, at the commencement of the next hearing of the case, or,
if the Magistrate for reasons to be recorded in writing so thinks fit,
forthwith, whether he wishes to cross-examine any, and, if so, which, of the
witnesses for the prosecution whose evidence has been taken.
(5) If he says he does so wish, the witnesses named by him shall be recalled
and, after cross-examination and re-examination (if any), they shall be
discharged.
(6) The evidence of any remaining witnesses for the prosecution shall next
be taken, and after cross-examination and re-examination (if any), they
shall also be discharged.
247.Evidence for defence.- The accused shall then be called upon to
enter upon his defence and produce his evidence; and the provisions of
section 243 shall apply to the case.
C.- Conclusion of trial
248.Acquittal or conviction.-(1) If, in any case under this Chapter in
which a charge has been framed, the Magistrate finds the accused not guilty,
he shall record an order of acquittal.
(2) Where, in any case under this Chapter, the Magistrate finds the accused
guilty, but does not proceed in accordance with the provisions of section
325 or section 360, he shall, after hearing the accused on the question of
sentence, pass sentence upon him according to law.
(3) Where, in any case under this Chapter, a previous conviction is charged
under the provisions of sub-section (7) of section 211 and the accused does
not admit that he has been previously convicted as alleged in the charge,
the Magistrate may, after he has convicted the said accused, take evidence
in respect of the alleged previous conviction, and shall record a finding
thereon:
Provided that no such charge shall be read out by the Magistrate no shall
the accused be asked to plead thereto no shall the previous conviction be
referred to by the prosecution or in any evidence adduced by it, unless and
until the accused has been convicted under sub-section (2).
249.Absence of complainant.- When the proceedings have been
instituted upon complaint, and on any day fixed for the hearing of the case,
the complainant is absent, and the offence may be lawfully compounded or is
not a cognizable offence, the Magistrate may, in his discretion,
notwithstanding anything hereinbefore contained, at any time before the
charge has been framed, discharge the accused.
250.Compensation for accusation without reasonable cause.- (1) If, in
any case instituted upon complaint or upon information given to a police
officer or to a Magistrate, one or more persons is or are accused before a
Magistrate of any offence triable by a Magistrate, and the Magistrate by
whom the case is heard discharges or acquits all or any of the accused, and
is of opinion that there was no reasonable ground for making the accusation
against them or any of them, the Magistrate may, by his order of discharge
or acquittal, if the person upon whose complaint or information the
accusation was made is present, call upon him forthwith to show cause why he
should not pay compensation to such accused or to each or any of such
accused when there are more than one; or, if such person is not present,
direct the issue of a summons to him to appear and show cause as aforesaid.
(2) The Magistrate shall record and consider any cause which such
complainant or informant may show, and if he is satisfied that there was no
reasonable ground for making the accusation, may, for reasons to be
recorded, make an order that compensation to such amount, not exceeding the
amount of fine he is empowered to impose, as he may determine, be paid by
such complainant or informant to the accused or to each or any of them.
(3) The Magistrate may, by the order directing payment of the compensation
under sub-section (2), further order that, in default of payment, the person
ordered to pay such compensation shall undergo simple imprisonment for a
period not exceeding thirty days.
(4) When any person is imprisoned under sub-section (3), the provisions of
sections 68 and 69 of the Indian Penal Code shall, so far as may be, apply.
(5) No person who has been directed to pay compensation under this section
shall, by reason of such order, be exempted from any civil or criminal
liability in respect of the complaint made or information given by him:
Provided that any amount paid to an accused person under this section shall
be taken into account in awarding compensation to such person in any
subsequent civil suit relating to the same matter.
(6) A complainant or informant who has been ordered under sub-section (2) by
a Magistrate of the second class to pay compensation exceeding one hundred
rupees, may appeal from the order, as if such complainant or informant had
been convicted on a trial held by such Magistrate.
(7) When an order for payment of compensation to an accused person is made
in a case which is subject to appeal under sub-section (6), the compensation
shall not be paid to him before the period allowed for the presentation of
the appeal has elapsed, or, if an appeal is presented, before the appeal has
been decided; and where such order is made in a case which is not so subject
to appeal the compensation shall not be paid before the expiration of one
month from the date of the order.
(8) The provisions of this section apply to summons-cases as well as to
warrant-cases.
CHAPTER XX
TRIAL OF SUMMONS-CASES BY MAGISTRATES
251.Substance of
accusation to be stated.-
When in a summons-case the accused appears or is brought before the
Magistrate, the particulars of the offence of which he is accused shall be
stated to him, and he shall be asked whether he pleads guilty or has any
defence to make, but it shall not be necessary to frame a formal charge.
252.Conviction on plea of guilty.- If the accused pleads guilty, the
Magistrate shall record the plea as nearly as possible in the words used by
the accused and may, in his discretion, convict him thereon.
253.Conviction on plea of guilty in absence of accused in petty cases.-
(1) Where a summons has been issued under section 206 and the accused
desires to plead guilty to the charge without appearing before the
Magistrate, he shall transmit to the Magistrate, by post or by messenger, a
letter containing his plea and also the amount of fine specified in the
summons.
(2) The Magistrate may, in his discretion, convict the accused in his
absence, on his plea of guilty and sentence him to pay the fine specified in
the summons, and the amount transmitted by the accused shall be adjusted
towards that fine, or where a pleader authorised by the accused in this
behalf pleads guilty on behalf of the accused, the Magistrate shall record
the plea as nearly as possible in the words used by the pleader and may, in
his discretion, convict the accused on such plea and sentence him as
aforesaid.
254.Procedure when not convicted.- (1) If the Magistrate does not
convict the accused under section 252 or section 253, the Magistrate shall
proceed to hear the prosecution and take all such evidence as may be
produced in support of the prosecution, and also to hear the accused and
take all such evidence as he produces in his defence.
(2) The Magistrate may, if he thinks fit, on the application of the
prosecution or the accused, issue a summons to any witness directing him to
attend or to produce any document or other thing.
(3) The Magistrate may, before summoning any witness on such application,
require that the reasonable expenses of the witness incurred in attending
for the purposes of the trial be deposited in Court.
255.Acquittal or conviction.- (1) If the Magistrate, upon taking the
evidence referred to in section 254 and such further evidence, if any, as he
may, of his own motion, cause to be produced, finds the accused not guilty,
he shall record an order of acquittal.
(2) Where the Magistrate does not proceed in accordance with the provisions
of section 325 or section 360, he shall, if he finds the accused guilty,
pass sentence upon him according to law.
(3) A Magistrate may, under section 252 or section 255, convict the accused
of any offence triable under this Chapter, which from the facts admitted or
proved he appears to have committed, whatever may be the nature of the
complaint or summons, if the Magistrate is satisfied that the accused would
not be prejudiced thereby.
256.Non-appearance or death of complainant.- (1) If the summons has
been issued on complaint, and on the day appointed for the appearance of the
accused, or any day subsequent thereto to which the hearing may be
adjourned, the complainant does not appear, the Magistrate shall,
notwithstanding anything hereinbefore contained, acquit the accused, unless
for some reason he thinks it proper to adjourn the hearing of the case to
some other day:
Provided that where the complainant is represented by a pleader or by the
officer conducting the prosecution or where the Magistrate is of opinion
that the personal attendance of the complainant is not necessary, the
Magistrate may dispense with his attendance and proceed with the case.
(2) The provisions of sub-section (1) shall, so far as may be, apply also to
cases where the non-appearance of the complainant is due to his death.
257.Withdrawal of complaint.- If a complainant, at any time before a
final order is passed in any case under this Chapter, satisfies the
Magistrate that there are sufficient grounds for permitting him to withdraw
his complaint against the accused, or if there be more than one accused,
against all or any of them, the Magistrate may permit him to withdraw the
same, and shall thereupon acquit the accused against whom the complaint is
so withdrawn.
258.Power to stop proceedings in certain cases.- In any summons-case
instituted otherwise than upon complaint, a Magistrate of the first class
or, with the previous sanction of the Chief Judicial Magistrate, any other
Judicial Magistrate, may, for reasons to be recorded by him, stop the
proceedings at any stage without pronouncing any judgment and where such
stoppage of proceedings is made after the evidence of the principal
witnesses has been recorded, pronounce a judgment of acquittal, and in any
other case, release the accused, and such release shall have the effect of
discharge.
259.Power of Court to convert summons-cases into warrant-cases.- When
in the course of the trial of a summons-case relating to an offence
punishable with imprisonment for a term exceeding six months, it appears to
the Magistrate that in the interests of justice, the offence should be tried
in accordance with the procedure for the trial of warrant-cases, such
Magistrate may proceed to re-hear the case in the manner provided by this
Code for the trial of warrant-cases and may re-call any witness who may have
been examined.
CHAPTER XXI
SUMMARY TRIALS
260.Power to try
summarily.-
(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Code-
(a) any Chief Judicial Magistrate;
(b) any Metropolitan Magistrate;
(c) any Magistrate of the first class specially empowered in this behalf by
the High Court,
may, if he thinks fit, try in a summary way all or any of the following
offences:
(I) offences not punishable with death, imprisonment for life or
imprisonment for a term exceeding two years;
(ii) theft, under section 379, section 380 or section 381 of the Indian
Penal Code, (45 of 1860) where the value of the property stolen does not
exceed two hundred rupees;
(iii) receiving or retaining stolen property, under section 411 of the
Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860) where the value of the property does not
exceed two hundred rupees;
(iv) assisting in the concealment or disposal of stolen property, under
section 414 of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860) where the value of such
property does not exceed two hundred rupees;
(v) offences under sections 454 and 456 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of
1860);
(vi) insult with intent to provoke a breach of the peace, under section 504,
and criminal intimidation, under section 506 of the Indian Penal Code(45 of
1860);
(vii) abetment of any of the foregoing offences;
(viii) an attempt to commit any of the foregoing offences, when such attempt
is an offence;
(ix) any offence constituted by an act in respect of which a complaint may
be made under section 20 of the Cattle-trespass Act, 1871(1 of 1871).
(2) When, in the course of a summary trial it appears to the Magistrate that
the nature of the case is such that it is undesirable to try it summarily,
the Magistrate shall recall any witnesses who may have been examined and
proceed to re-hear the case in the manner provided by this Code.
261.Summary trial by Magistrate of the second class.- The High Court
may confer on any Magistrate invested with the powers of a Magistrate of the
second class power to try summarily any offence which is punishable only
with fine or with imprisonment for a term not exceeding six months with or
without fine, and any abetment of or attempt to commit any such offence.
262.Procedure for summary trials.- (1) In trials under this Chapter, the
procedure specified in this Code for the trial of summons-case shall be
followed except as hereinafter mentioned.
(2) No sentence of imprisonment for a term exceeding three months shall be
passed in the case of any conviction under this Chapter.
263.Record in summary trials.- In every case tried summarily, the
Magistrate shall enter, in such form as the State Government may direct, the
following particulars, namely:-
(a) the serial number of the case:
(b) the date of the commission of the offence;
(c) the date of the report or complaint;
(d) the name of the complainant (if any);
(e) the name, parentage and residence of the accused;
(f) the offence complained of and the offence (if any) proved, and in cases
coming under clause (ii), clause (iii) or clause (iv) of sub-section (1) of
section 260, the value of the property in respect of which the offence has
been committed;
(g) the plea of the accused and his examination (if any);
(h) the finding;
(i) the sentence or other final order
(j) the date on which proceedings terminated.
264.Judgment in cases tried summarily.- In every case tried summarily
in which the accused does not plead guilty, the Magistrate shall record the
substance of the evidence and a judgment containing a brief statement of the
reasons for the finding.
265.Language of record and judgment.- (1) Every such record and
judgment shall be written in the language of the Court.
(2) The High Court may authorise any Magistrate empowered to try offences
summarily to prepare the aforesaid record or judgment or both by means of an
officer appointed in this behalf by the Chief Judicial Magistrate, and the
record or judgment so prepared shall be signed by such Magistrate
CHAPTER
XXII
ATTENDANCE
OF PERSONS CONFINED OR DETAINED IN PRISONS
266. Definition
:- In this chapter-,
(a) "detained" includes detained under any law providing for preventive
detention;
(b) 'prison " includes -
(i) any place which has been declared by the Government, by general or
special order, a subsidiary jail;
(ii) any reformatory, Borstal institution or institution of a like nature.
267. Power to require attendance of prisoner:-(1) Whenever, in the
course of an inquiry, trial or proceeding under this Code, it appears to a
Criminal Court,-
(a) that a person confined or detained in a prison should be brought before
the Court for answer to a charge of an offence, or for the purpose any
proceedings against him, or
(b) that it is necessary for the ends of justice to examine such person as a
witness,
the Court may make an order requiring the officer in charge of the prison to
produce such person before the Court answering to the charge or for the
purpose of such proceed or, as the case may be, for giving evidence.
(2) Where an order under sub-section (1) is made by a Magistrate of the
second class, it shall not be forwarded to, or acted upon by, the officer in
charge of the prison unless it is countersigned by the Chief Judicial
Magistrate, to whom such Magistrate is subordinate.
(3) Every order submitted for countersigning under sub-section (2) shall be
accompanied by a statement of the facts which, in the opinion of the
Magistrate, render the order necessary, and the Chief Judicial Magistrate to
whom it is submitted may, after considering such statement, decline to
countersign the order.
268. Power of State Government to exclude certain persons from operation
of Section 267 -(1) The State Government may, at any time, having regard
to the matter specified in sub-section (2), by general or special order,
direct that any person or class of persons shall not be removed from the
prison in which he or they may be confined or detained, and thereupon, so
long as the order remains in force, no order made under Section 267, whether
before or after the order of the State Government, shall have effect in
respect of such person or class of persons.
(2) Before making an order under sub-section (1), the State Government shall
have regard to the following matters, namely :--
(a) the nature of the offence for which, or the grounds on which, the person
or class of persons has been ordered to be confined or detained in prison;
(b) the likelihood of the disturbance of public order if the person or class
of persons is allowed to be removed from the prison;
(c) the public interest, generally.
269. Officer in charge of prison to abstain from carrying out order in
certain contingencies :- Where the person in respect of whom an order is
made under Section 267 -
(a) is by reason of sickness or infirmity unfit to be removed from the
prison; or
(b) is under committal for trial or under remand pending trial or pending a
preliminary investigation; or
(c) is in custody for a period which would expire before the expiration of
the time required for complying with the order and for taking him back to
the prison in which he is confined or detained; or
(d) is a person to whom an order made by the State Government under Section
268 applies,
the officer in charge of the prison shall abstain from carrying out the
Court's order and shall send to the Court a statement of reasons for so
abstaining:
Provided that where the attendance of such person required for giving
evidence at a place not more than twenty five kilometres distant from the
prison, the officer in charge of the prison shall not so abstain for the
reason mentioned in Clause (b).
270. Prisoner to be brought to Court in custody:- Subject to the
provisions of Section 269, the offices. charge of the prison shall, upon
delivery of an order m under sub-section (1) of Section 267 and duly
countersign where necessary, under sub-section (2) thereof, cause the person
named in the order to be taken to the Court in which his attendance is
required, so as to be present there at the time mentioned in the order, and
shall cause him to be kept in custody in or near the Court until he has been
examined or until the Court authorises him to be taken back to the prison in
which he was confined or detained.
271. Power to issue commission for examination of witness in prison
:- The provisions of this Chapter shall be without prejudice to the power of
the Court to issue, under Section 284, a commission for the examination, as
witness, of any person confined or detained in a prison; an the provisions
of Part B of Chapter XXIII shall apply in relation to the examination on
commission of any such person in the prison as they apply in relation to the
examination on commission of any other person.
CHAPTER
XXIII
EVIDENCE IN
INQUIRIES AND TRIALS
A - Mode of Taking
and Recording Evidence
272. Language of Courts
:- The State Government may determine what shall be, for purposes of this
Code, the language of each Court within the State other than the High Court.
273. Evidence to be taken in presence of accused:- Except as
otherwise expressly provided, all evidence taken in the course of the trial
or other proceeding shall be taken in the presence of the accused, or, when
his personal attendance is dispensed with, in presence of his pleader.
Explanation - In this Section, "accused" includes a person in relation to
whom any proceeding under Chapter VIII has been commenced under this Code.
274. Record in summons-cases and inquiries:-(1) In all summons-cases
tried before a Magistrate, in all inquiries under Sections 145 to 148 (both
inclusive), and in all proceedings under Section 446 otherwise than in the
course of a trial, the Magistrate shall, as the examination of each witness
proceeds, make a memorandum of the substance of his evidence in the language
of the Court:
Provided that if the Magistrate is unable to make such memorandum himself,
he shall, after recording the reason of his inability, cause such memorandum
to be made in writing or from his dictation in open Court.
(2) Such memorandum shall be signed by the Magistrate and shall form part of
the record.
275. Record in warrant-cases:-(1) In all warrant-cases tried before a
Magistrate, the evidence of each witness shall, as his examination proceeds,
be taken down in writing either by the Magistrate himself or by his
dictation in open Court or, where he is unable to do so owing to a physical
or other incapacity, under his direction and superintendence, by an officer
of the Court appointed by him in this behalf.
(2) Where the Magistrate causes the evidence to he taken down, he shall
record a certificate that the evidence could not be taken down by himself
for the reasons referred to in sub-section (1).
(3) Such evidence shall ordinarily be taken down in the form of a narrative;
but the Magistrate may, in his discretion take down or cause to be taken
down, any part of such evidence in the form of question and answer.
(4) The evidence so taken down shall be signed by the Magistrate and shall
form part of the record.
276. Record in trial before Court of Session:-(1) In all trials
before a Court of Session, the evidence of each witness shall, as his
examination proceeds, be taken down in writing either by the presiding Judge
himself or by his dictation in open Court, or under his direction and
superintendence, by an officer of the Court appointed by him in this behalf.
(2) Such evidence shall ordinarily be taken down in the form of a narrative,
but the presiding Judge may, in his discretion, take down, or cause to be
taken down, any part of such evidence in the form of question and answer.
(3) The evidence so taken down shall be signed by the presiding Judge and
shall form part of the record.
277. Language of record of evidence:- In every case where evidence is
taken down under Sections 275 and 276:-
(a) if the witness gives evidence in the language of the Court, it shall be
taken down in that language;
(b) if he gives evidence in any other language, it may, if practicable, be
taken down in that language, and if it is not practicable to do so, a true
translation of the evidence in the language of the Court shall be prepared
as the examination of the witness proceeds, signed by the Magistrate or
presiding Judge, and shall form part of the record;
(c) where under Clause (b) evidence is taken down in a language other than
the language of the Court, a true transaction thereof in the language of the
Court shall be prepared as soon as practicable, signed by the Magistrate or
presiding Judge, and shall form part of the record:
Provided that when under clause (b) evidence is taken down in English and a
translation thereof in the language of the Court is not required by any of
the parties, the Court may dispense with such translation.
278. Procedure in regard to such evidence when completed.--(1) As the
evidence of each witness taken under Section 275 or Section 276 is
completed, it shall be read over to him in the presence of the accused, if
in attendance, or of his pleader, if he appears by pleader, and shall, if
necessary, be corrected.
(2) If the witness denies the correctness of any part of the evidence when
the same is read over to him, the Magistrate or presiding Judge may, instead
of correcting the evidence, make a memorandum thereon of the objection made
to it by the witness, and shall add such remarks as he thinks necessary.
(3) If the record of the evidence is in a language different from that in
which it has been given and the witness does not understand that language,
the record shall be interpreted to him in the language in which it was
given, or in a language which he understands.
279. Interpretation of evidence to accused or his pleader :-(1)
Whenever any evidence is given in a language not understood by the accused,
and he is present in Court in person, it shall be interpreted to him in open
Court in a language understood by him.
(2) If he appears by pleader and the evidence is given in a language other
than the language of the Court, and not understood by the pleader, it shall
be interpreted to such pleader in that language.
(3) When documents are put for the purpose of formal proof, it shall be in
the discretion of the Court to interpret as much thereof as appears
necessary.
280. Remarks respecting demeanour of witness:-When a presiding Judge
or Magistrate has recorded the evidence of a witness, he shall also record
such remarks (if any) as he thinks material respecting the demeanour of such
witness whilst under examination.
281. Record of examination of accused :--(1) Whenever the accused is
examined by a Metropolitan Magistrate, the Magistrate shall make a
memorandum of the substance of the examination of the accused in the
language of the Court and such memorandum shall be signed by the Magistrate
and shall form part of the record.
(2) Whenever the accused is examined by any Magistrate other than a
Metropolitan Magistrate, or by a Court of Session, the whole of such
examination, including every question put to him and every answer given by
him, shall be recorded in full by the presiding Judge or Magistrate himself
or where he is unable to do so owing to a physical or other incapacity,
under his direction and superintendence by an officer of the Court appointed
by him in this behalf.
(3) The record shall, if practicable, be in the language in which the
accused is examined, or if that is not practicable, in the language of the
Court.
(4) The record shall be shown or read to the accused, or, if he does not
understand the language in which it is written, shall be interpreted to him
in a language which he understands, and he shall be at liberty to explain or
add to his answers.
(5) It shall thereafter be signed by the accused and by the Magistrate or
presiding Judge, who shall certify under his own hand that the examination
was taken in his presence and hearing and that the record contains a full
and true account of the statement made by the accused.
(6) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to apply to the examination of
an accused person in the course of a summary trial.
282. Interpreter to be bound to interpret truthfully:- When the
services of an interpreter are required by any Criminal Court for the
interpretation of any evidence or statement, he shall be bound to state the
true interpretation of such evidence or statement.
283. Record in High Court:- Every High Court may, by general rule,
prescribe the manner in which the evidence of witnesses and the examination
of the accused shall be taken down in cases coming before it, and such
evidence and examination shall be taken down in accordance with such rule.
284. When attendance of witness may be dispensed with and commission
issued :-(1) Whenever, in the course of any inquiry, trial or other
proceeding under this Code, it appears to a Court or Magistrate that the
examination of a witness is necessary for the ends of justice, and that the
attendance of such witness cannot be procured without an amount of delay,
expense or inconvenience which, under the circumstances of the case, would
be unreasonable, the Court or Magistrate may dispense with such attendance
and may issue a commission for the examination of the witness in accordance
with the provisions of this Chapter:
Provided that where the examination of the President or the Vice-President
of India or the Governor of a State; or the Administrator of a Union
Territory as a witness is necessary for the ends of Justice, a commission
shall be issued for the examination of such a witness.
(2) The Court may, when issuing a commission for, the examination of a
witness for the prosecution, direct that such amount as the Court considers
reasonable to meet the expenses of the accused, including the pleader's
fees, be paid by the prosecution.
B - Commissions for Examination of Witnesses
285. Commission to whom to be issued :-(1) If witness is within the
territories to which this Code extend the commission shall be directed to
the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate or the Chief Judicial Magistrate, as the
case may be, within whose local jurisdiction the witness is to be found.
(2) If the witness is in India, but in a State or an area to which this Code
does not extend, the commission, shall be directed to such Court or officer
as the Central Government may, by notification, specify in this behalf.
(3) If the witness is in a country or place outside India and arrangements
have been made by the Central Government with the Government of such country
or place for taking the evidence of witnesses in relation to criminal
matters, the commission shall be issued in such form, directed to such Court
or officer, and sent to such authority for transmission as the Central
Government may, by notification, prescribed in this behalf.
286. Execution of commissions :- Upon receipt of the Commission, the
Chief Metropolitan Magistrate, or Chief Judicial Magistrate, or such
Metropolitan or Judicial Magistrate as he may appoint in this behalf, shall
summon the witness before him or proceed to the place where the witness is,
and shall take down his evidence in the same manner, and may for this
purpose exercise the same powers, as in trials or warrant cases under this
Code.
287. Parties may examine witnesses :-(1) The parties to any
proceeding under this Code in which a commission is issued may respectively
forward any interrogatories in writing which the Court or Magistrate
directing the commission may think relevant to the issue, and it shall be
lawful for the Magistrate, Court or officer to whom the commission, is
directed, or to whom the duty of executing it is delegated, to examine the
witness upon such interrogatories.
(2) Any such party may appear before such magistrate, Court or Officer by
Pleader, or if not in custody, in person, and may examine, cross-examine and
re-examine (as the case may be) the said witness.
288. Return of Commission:- (1) After any commission issued under
Section 284 has been duly executed, it shall be returned, together with the
deposition of the witness examined thereunder, to the Court or Magistrate
issuing the commission, and the commission, the return thereto and the
deposition shall be open at all reasonable times to inspection of the
parties, and may, subject to all just exceptions, be read in evidence in the
case by either party, and shall form part of the record.
(2) Any deposition so taken, if it satisfies the conditions prescribed by
Section 33 of the Indian Evidence Act,, 1872 (1 of 1872), may also be
received in evidence at any subsequent stage of the case before another
Court.
289. Adjournment of proceeding:- In every case in which a commission
is issued under Section 284, the inquiry, trial or other proceeding may be
adjourned for a specified time reasonably sufficient for the execution and
return of the commission.
290. Execution of foreign commissions:- (1) The Provisions of Section
286 and so much of Section 287 and Section 288 as relate to the execution of
a commission and its return shall apply in respect of commissions issued by
any of the Courts, Judges or Magistrates hereinafter mentioned as they apply
to commissions issued under Section 284.
(2) The Courts, Judges and Magistrates referred to in sub-section (1) are-
(a) any such Court, Judge or Magistrate exercising jurisdiction within an
area in India to which this Code does not extent, as the Central Government
may, by notification, specify in this behalf;
(b) any Court, Judge or Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in any such
country or place outside India, as the Central Government may, by
notification, specify in this behalf, and having authority, under the law in
force in that country or place, to issue commissions for the examination of
witnesses in relation to criminal matters.
291. Deposition of medical witness:- (1) The deposition of a civil
surgeon or other medical witness, taken and attested by a Magistrate in the
presence of the accused, or taken on commission under this chapter, may be
given in evidence in any inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this code,
although the deponent is not called as witness.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, and shall, on the application of the
prosecution or the accused, summon and examine any such deponent as to the
subject-matter of his deposition.
292. Evidence of Officers of the Mint : - (1) Any document purporting
to be a report under the hand of any such Gazetted Officer of the Mint or of
the Indian Security Press (including the Officer of the Controller of Stamps
and stationery) as the Central Government may, by notification, specify in
this behalf, upon any matter or thing duly submitted to him for examination
and report in the course of any proceeding under this Code, may be used as
evidence in any inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this Code, although
such officer is not called as a witness.
(2) The court may, if it thinks fit, summon and examine any such officer as
to be the subject-matter of his report:
Provided that no such officer shall be summoned to produce any records on
which the report is based.
(3) Without prejudice to the provisions of Sections 123 and 124 of the
Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872), no such officer shall, except with
the permission of the Master of the Mint or the Indian Security Press or the
Controller of Stamps and Stationery, as the case may be, permitted,
(a) to give any evidence derived from any unpublished official records on
which the report is based ; or
(b) to disclose the nature or particulars of any test applied by him in the
course of the examination of the matter or thing.
293. Reports of certain Government scientific experts-:-(1) Any
document purporting to be a report under the hand of a Government scientific
expert to whom this Section applies, upon any matter or thing duly submitted
to him for examination or analysis and report in the course of any
proceeding under this Code, may be used as evidence in any, inquiry, trial
or other proceeding under this Code.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, summon and examine any such expert as
to the subject-matter of his report.
(3) Where any such expert is summoned by a Court, and he is unable to attend
personally, he may, unless the Court has expressly directed him to appear
personally depute any responsible officer working with him to attend the
Court, if such officer is conversant with the facts of the case and can
satisfactorily depose in Court on his behalf.
(4) This Section applies to the following Government scientific experts,
namely:-
(a) any Chemical Examiner or Assistant Chemical Examiner to Government
(b) the Chief Inspector of Explosives;
(c) the Director of the Finger Print Bureau;
(d) the Director Haffkeine Institute, Bombay ;
(e) the Director, Deputy Director or Assistant Director of a Central
Forensic Science Laboratory or a State
Forensic Science Laboratory;
(f) the Serologist to the Government.
294. No formal proof of certain documents:-Where any document is
filed before any Court by the prosecution or the accused, the particulars of
every such document shall be included in a list and the prosecution or the
accused, as the case may be, or the pleader for the prosecution or the
accused, if any, shall be called upon to admit or deny the genuineness of
each such document.
(2) The list of documents shall be in such form as be prescribed by the
State Government.
(3) Where the genuineness of any document is not disputed, such document may
be read in evidence in inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this Code
without proof of the signature of the person to whom it purports to be
signed :
Provided that the Court may, in its discretion, require such signature to be
proved.
295. Affidavit in proof of conduct of public servant:- When any
application is made to any Court in the course of any inquiry, trial or
other proceedings under this Code, and allegations are made therein
respecting any public servant the applicant may give evidence of the facts
alleged in the application by affidavit, and the Court may, if it thinks
fit, order that evidence relating to such facts to be given.
296. Evidence of formal character on affidavit:- (1) The evidence of
any person whose evidence is of a formal character may be given by affidavit
and may, subject to all just exceptions, be read in evidence in any inquiry,
trial or other proceeding under this Code.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, and shall, on the application of the
prosecution or the accused, summons and examine any such person as to the
facts contained in his affidavit.
297. Authorities before whom affidavits may be sworn:- (1) Affidavits
to be used before any Court under this Code may be sworn or affirmed
before,-
(a) any Judge or Judicial or Executive Magistrate, or
(b) any commissioner of Oaths appointed by a High Court or Court of Session,
or
(c) any notary appointed under the Notaries Act, 1952 (53 of 1952).
(2) Affidavits shall be confined to, and shall state separately, such facts
as the deponent is able to prove from his own knowledge and such facts as he
has reasonable ground to believe to be true, and in the latter case, the
deponent shall clearly state the grounds of such belief.
(3) The Court may order any scandalous and irrelevant matter in the
affidavit to be struck out or amended.
298. Previous conviction or acquittal how proved:- In any inquiry,
trial or other proceeding under this Code, a previous conviction or
acquittal may be proved, in addition to any other mode provided by any law
for the time being in force,-
(a) by an extract certified under the hand of the officer having the
custody, of the records of the Court in which such conviction or acquittal
was held, to be a copy of the sentence or order; or
(b) in case of a conviction, either by a certificate signed by the officer
in charge of the Jail in which the punishment or any part thereof was
undergone, or by production of the warrant of commitment under which the
punishment was suffered, together with, in each of such cases, evidence as
to the identity of the accused person with the person so convicted or
acquitted.
299. Record of evidence in absence of accused:- (1) If it is proved
that an accused person has absconded, and that there is no immediate
prospect of arresting him, the Court competent to try or commit for trial,
such person for the offence complained of, may, in his absence, examine the
witnesses (if any) produced on behalf of the prosecution, and record their
depositions and any such deposition may, on the arrest of such person, be
given in evidence against him on the inquiry into, or trial for, the offence
with which he is charged, if the deponent is dead or incapable of giving
evidence or cannot be found or his presence cannot be procured without an
amount of delay, expense or inconvenience which, under the circumstances of
the case, would be unreasonable.
(2) If it appears that an offence punishable with death or imprisonment for
life has been committed by some person or persons unknown, the High Court or
the Sessions Judge may direct that any Magistrate of the first class shall
hold an inquiry and examine any witnesses who can give evidence concerning
the offence and any depositions so taken may be given in evidence against
any person who is subsequently accused of the offence, if the deponent is
dead or incapable of giving evidence or beyond the limits of India.
STATE AMENDMENT
Uttar Pradesh - In sub-sec. (1), for the words "competent to try such
person", the Words "competent to try such person or to commit him for
trial", shall be substituted - U.P. Act 16 of 1976, w.e.f. 1-5-1976.
CHAPTER
XXIV
GENERAL
PROVISIONS AS TO INQUIRIES AND TRIALS
300. Person once
convicted or acquitted not to be tried for same offence:-(1)
A person who has once been tried by a Court of competent jurisdiction for an
offence and convicted or acquitted of such offence shall, while such
conviction or acquittal remains in force, not be liable to be tried again
for the same offence, nor on the same facts for any Other Offence for which
a different charge from the one made against him might have been made under
sub-section (1) of Section 221, or for which he might have been convicted
under sub-section (2) thereof.
(2) A person acquitted or convicted of any offence, may be afterwards tried,
with the consent of the State Government, for any distinct offence for which
a separate charge might have been made against him at the former trial under
sub-section (1) of Section 220.
(3) A person convicted of any offence constituted by any act causing
consequences which, together with such act, constituted a different offence
from that of which he was convicted, may be afterwards tried for such last
mentioned offence, if the consequences had not happened,
(4) A person acquitted convicted of any offence constituted by any acts may,
notwithstanding such acquittal or conviction, be subsequently charged with,
and tried for, any other offence constituted by the same acts which he may
have committed if the Court by which he was first tried was not competent to
try the offence with which he is subsequently charged.
(5) A Person discharged under Section 258 shall not be tried again for the
same offence except with the consent of the Court by which he was discharged
or of any other Court to which the first mentioned Court is subordinate.
(6) Nothing in this Section shall affect the provisions ,of Section 26 of
the General Clauses Act, 1897 (10 of 1897) or of Section 188 of this Code.
Explanation:- The dismissal of a complaint, or the discharge of the accused,
is not an acquittal for the purpose of this Section.
301. Appearance by Public Prosecutors:- (1) The Public Prosecutor or
Assistant Public Prosecutor in charge of a case may appear and plead without
any written authority before any Court in which that case is under inquiry,
trial or appeal.
(2) If in any such case any private person instructs a pleader to prosecute
any person in any Court, the Public Prosecutor or Assistant Public
Prosecutor in charge of the case shall conduct the prosecution, and the
pleader so instructed shall act therein under the directions of the Public
Prosecutor or Assistant Public Prosecutor, and may, with the permission of
the Court, submit written arguments after the evidence is closed in the
case.
STATE AMENDMENT
West Bengal:- Substitute the following for sub-sec. 301 (I)
(1)(a) The Public Prosecutor in charge of a case may appear and plead
without any written authority before any Court in which that case is under
inquiry, trial or appeal.
(b) The Assistant Public Prosecutor in charge of a case may appear and plead
without any written authority before any Court in which that case is under
inquiry or trial."
W.B. Act No. 26 of 1990, enforcement date not yet notified.
302. Permission to conduct prosecution :-(1) Any Magistrate inquiring
into or trying a case may permit the prosecution to be conducted by any
person other than a police officer below the rank of inspector, but no
person, other than the Advocate-General, or Government Advocate or a Public
Prosecutor or Assistant Public Prosecutor, shall be entitled to do so
without such permission:
Provided that no police officer shall be permitted to conduct the
prosecution if he has taken part in the investigation into the offence with
respect to which the accused is being prosecuted.
(2) Any person conducting the prosecution may do so personally or by a
pleader.
303. Right of person against whom proceedings instituted to be defended
:- Any person accused of offence before a Criminal Court or against whom
proceedings are instituted under this Code, may of right be defended by a
pleader of his choice.
304. Legal aid to accused at State expense in certain cases :-(1)
Where, in a trial before the Court of Session, the accused is not
represented by a pleader, and where appears to the Court that the accused
has not sufficient means to engage a pleader, the Court shall assign a
pleader for his defence at the expense of the State.
(2) The High Court may, with the previous approval of the State Government,
make rules providing for,--
(a) the mode of selecting pleaders for defence under sub-section (1) ;
(b) the facilities to be allowed to such pleaders by the Courts;
(c) the fees payable to such pleaders by the Government and generally, for
carrying out the purposes of sub-section (1).
(3) The State Government may, by notification, direct that, as from such
date as may be specified in the notification the provisions of sub-sections
(1) and (2) shall apply it relation to any class of trials before other
Courts in the State as they apply in relation to trials before Courts of
Session.
305. Procedure when corporation or registered society is an accused:--(1)
In this section, "corporation " means an incorporated company or other body
corporate, and includes a society registered under the Societies
Registration Act, 1860 (21 of 1860).
(2) Where a corporation is the accused person or one of the accused persons
in an inquiry or trial, it may appoint a representative for the purpose of
the inquiry or trial and such appointment need not be under the seal of the
corporation.
(3) Where a representative of a corporation appears, any requirement of this
code that anything shall be done in the presence of the accused or shall be
read or stated or explained to the accused, shall be construed as a
requirement that the thing shall be done in the presence of the
representative, and any requirement that the accused shall be examined shall
be construed as a requirement that the representative shall be examined.
(4) Where a representative of a corporation does not appear, any such
requirement as is referred to in sub-section (3) shall not apply.
(5) Where a statement in writing purporting to be signed by the managing
director of the corporation or by any person (by whatever name called)
having, or being one of the persons having the management of the affairs of
the Corporation to the effect that the person named in the statement has
been appointed as the representative of the corporation for the purposes of
this Section, is filed, the Court shall, unless the contrary is proved,
presume that such person has been so appointed.
(6) If a question arises as to whether any person, appearing as the
representative of a corporation in an inquiry or trial before a Court is or
is not such representative, the question shall be determined by the Court.
306. Tender of pardon to accomplice :-(1) With a view to obtaining
the evidence of any person supposed to have been directly or indirectly
concerned in or privy to an offence to which this Section applies, the Chief
Judicial Magistrate or a Metropolitan Magistrate at any stage of the
investigation or inquiry into, or the trial of, the offence, and the
Magistrate of the first class inquiring into, or trying the offence, at any
stage of the inquiry or trial, may tender pardon to such person on condition
of his making a full and true disclosure of the whole of the circumstances
within his knowledge relative to the offence and to every other person
concerned, whether as principle or abettor, in the commission thereof.
(2) This Section applies to--
(a) any offence triable exclusively by the Court of Session or by the Court
of a Special Judge appointed under the Criminal Law Amendment Act, 1952 (46
of 1952);
(b) any offence punishable with imprisonment which may extend to seven years
or with a more severe sentence.
(3) Every Magistrate who tenders a pardon under sub- section (1) shall
record-
(a) his reasons for so doing
(b) whether the tender was or was not accepted by the person to whom it was
made;
and shall, on application made by the accused, furnish him with a copy of
such record free of cost.
(4) Every person accepting a tender of pardon made under sub-section (1)-
(a) shall be examined as a witness in the Court of the Magistrate taking
cognizance of the offence and in the subsequent trial, if any;
(b) shall, unless he is already on bail, be detained in custody until the
termination of the trial.
(5) Where a person has accepted a tender of pardon made under sub-section
(1) and has been examined under sub-section (4), the Magistrate taking
cognizance of the offence shall, without making any further inquiry in the
case-
(a) commit it for trial-
(i) to the Court of Session if the offence is triable exclusively by that
Court or if the Magistrate taking cognizance is the Chief Judicial
Magistrate ;
(ii) to a Court of Special Judge appointed under the Criminal Law Amendment
Act, 1952, (46 of 1952), if the offence is triable exclusively by that Court
;
(b) in any other case, make over the case to the Chief Judicial Magistrate
who shall try the case himself.
307. Power to direct tender of pardon :- At any time after commitment
of a case but before judgement is passed, the Court to which the commitment
is made may, with a view to obtaining at the trial the evidence of any
person supposed to have been directly or indirectly concerned in, or privy
to, any such offence, tender a pardon on the same condition to such person.
308. Trial of person not complying with conditions of pardon :-(1)
Where, in regard to a person who has accepted a tender of pardon made under
Section 306 or Section 307 the Public Prosecutor certifies that in his
opinion such person has, either by wilfully concealing anything essential or
by giving false evidence, not complied with the condition on which the
tender was made, such person may be tried for the offence in respect of
which the pardon was so tendered, or for any other offence of which he
appears to have been guilty in connection with the same matter, and also for
the offence of giving false evidence:
Provided that such person shall not be tried jointly with any of the other
accused :
Provided further that such person shall not be tried for the offence of
giving false evidence except with the sanction of the High Court, and
nothing contained in Section 195 Section 340 shall apply to that offence.
(2) Any statement made by such person accepting tender of pardon and
recorded by a Magistrate under Sec 164 or by a Court under sub-section (4)
of Section 306 may be given in evidence against him at such trial.
(3) At such trial, the accused shall be entitled to plead that he has
complied with the condition upon which such tender was made ; in which case
it shall be for the prosecution to prove that such condition has not been
complied with.
(4) At such trial, the Court shall-
(a) if it is a Court of Session, before the charge is read out and explained
to the accused ;
(b) if it is the Court of a Magistrate, before the evident of the witnesses
for the prosecution is taken, ask the accused whether he pleads that he has
complied with the conditions on which the tender of pardon was made.
(5) If the accused does so plead, the Court shall record, the plea and
proceed with the trial and it shall, before passing judgement in the case,
find whether or not the accused has complied with the conditions of the
pardon, and, if it finds that he has so complied, it shall, notwithstanding
anything contained in this Code, pass judgement of acquittal.
309. Power to postpone or adjourn proceedings:- (1) In every inquiry
or trial, the proceedings shall be held as expeditiously as possible, and in
particular, when the examination of witnesses has once begun, the same shall
be continued from day to day until all the witnesses in attendance have been
examined, unless the Court finds the adjournment of the same beyond the
following day to be necessary for reasons to be recorded.
If the Court after taking cognizance of an offence, or commencement of
trial, finds it necessary or advisable to postpone the commencement of, or
adjourn, any inquiry or trial, it may, from time to time, for reasons to be
recorded, postpone or adjourn the same on such terms as it thinks fit, for
such time as it considers reasonable and may by a warrant remand the accused
if in custody:
Provided that no Magistrate shall remand an accused person to custody under
this Section for a term exceeding fifteen days at a time :
Provided further that when witnesses are in attendance, no adjournment or
postponement shall be granted, without examining them, except for special
reasons to be recorded in writing.
Explanation 1:- If sufficient evidence has been obtained to raise a
suspicion that the accused may have committed an offence, and it appears
likely that further evidence may be obtained by a remand, this is a
reasonable cause for a remand.
Explanation 2 :- The terms on which an adjournment or postponement may be
granted include, in appropriate cases, the payment of costs by the
prosecution or the accused.
310. Local Inspection:- (1) Any judge or Magistrate may, at any stage
of any inquiry, trial or other proceeding, after due notice to the parties,
visit and inspect any place in which an offence is alleged to have been
committed, or any other place which it is in his opinion necessary to view
for the purpose of properly appreciating the evidence given at such inquiry
or trial, and shall without unnecessary delay record a memorandum of any
relevant facts observed at such inspection.
(2) Such memorandum shall form part of the record of the case and if the
prosecutor, complainant or accused or any other party to the case, so
desires, a copy of the memorandum shall be furnished to him free of cost.
311. Power to summon material witness, or examine Person Present:-
Any Court may, at any stage of any inquiry, trial or other proceeding under
this Code, summon any person as a witness, or examine any person in
attendance, though not summoned, as a witness, or recall and re-examine any
person already examined ; and the Court shall summon and examine or recall
and re-examine any such person if his evidence appears to it to be essential
to the just decision of the case.
312. Expenses of complainants and witnesses:- Subject to any rules
made by the State Government, any Criminal Court may, if it thinks fit,
order payment, on the part of the Government, of the reasonable expenses of
any complainant or witness attending for the purposes of any inquiry trial
or other proceeding before such Court under this Code.
313. Power to examine the accused :--(1) In every inquiry or trial,
for the purpose of enabling the accused personally to explain any
circumstances appearing in the evidence against him, the Court -
(a) may, at any stage, without previously warning the accused, put such
questions to him as the Court considers necessary;
(b) shall, after the witnesses for the prosecution have been examined and
before he is called on for his defence, question him generally on the case:
Provided that in a summons-case, where the Court has dispensed with the
personal attendance of the accused, it may also dispense with his
examination under Clause (b).
(2) No oath shall be administered to the accused when he is examined under
sub-section (1).
(3) The accused shall not render himself liable to punishment by refusing to
answer such questions, or by giving false answers to them.
(4) The answers given by the accused may be taken into consideration in such
inquiry or trial, and put in evidence for, or against him in any other
inquiry into, or trial for, any other offence which such answers may tend to
show he has committed.
314. Oral arguments and memorandum of arguments:- (1) Any party to a
proceeding may, as soon as may be, after the close of his evidence, address
concise oral arguments; and may, before he concludes the oral arguments, if
any, submit a memorandum to the Court setting forth concisely and under
distinct headings, the arguments in support of his case and every such
memorandum shall form part of the record.
(2) A copy of every such memorandum shall be simultaneously furnished to the
opposite party.
(3) No adjournment of the proceedings shall be granted for the purpose of
filing the written arguments unless the Court, for reasons to be recorded in
writing, considers it necessary to grant such adjournment.
(4) The Court may, if it is of opinion that the arguments are not concise or
relevant, regulate arguments.
315. Accused person to be competent witness:- (1) Any person accused
of an offence before a Criminal Court shall be a competent witness for the
defence and may, evidence on oath in disproof of the charges made against
him or any person charged together with him at the same trial :
Provided that-
(a) he shall not be called as a witness except on own request in writing :
(b) his failure to give evidence shall not be made subject of any comment by
any of the parties the Court or give rise to any presumption ago himself or
any person charged together with that the same trial.
(2) Any person against whom proceedings are instituted in any Criminal Court
under Section 98, or Section 107, Section 108, or Section 109, or Section
110, or under Chapter IX or under Part B, Part C or Part D or Chapter X, may
offer himself as a witness in such proceedings:
Provided that in proceedings under Section 108, Section 109, or Section 110,
the failure of such person to give evidence shall not be made the subject of
any comment by any of the parties or the Court or give rise to any
presumption against him or any other person proceeded against together with
him at the same inquiry.
316. No Influence to be used to induce disclosure:- Except as
provided in Section 306 and 307, no influence, by means of any promise or
threat or otherwise, shall be used to an accused person to induce him to
disclose or withhold any matter within his knowledge.
317. Provision for inquiries and trial being held in the absence of
accused in certain cases:- (1) At any stage of an inquiry or trial under
this code, if the Judge or Magistrate is satisfied, for reasons to be
recorded, that the personal attendance of the accused before the Court is
not necessary in the interests of justice, or that the accused persistently
disturbs the proceedings in court, the Judge or Magistrate may, if the
accused is represented by a pleader, dispense with his attendance and
proceed with such inquiry or trial in his absence, and may, at any
subsequent stage of the proceedings, direct the personal attendance of such
accused.
(2) If the accused in any such case is not represented by a pleader, or if
the Judge or Magistrate considers his personal attendance necessary, he may,
if he thinks fit and for reasons to be recorded by him, either adjourn such
inquiry to trial, or order that the case of such accused be taken up or
tried separately.
318. Procedure where accused does not understand proceedings:- If the
accused, though not of unsound mind, cannot be made to understand the
proceedings, the court may proceed with the inquiry or trial; and, in the
case of Court other than a High Court, if such proceedings result in a
conviction, the proceedings shall be forwarded to the High court with a
report of the circumstances of the case, and the High Court shall pass
thereon such order as it thinks fit.
319. Power to proceed against other persons appearing to be guilty of
offence:- (1) Where, in the course of any inquiry into, or trial of an
offence, it appears from the evidence that any person not being the accused
has committed any offence for which such person could be tried together with
the accused, the Court may proceed against such person for the offence which
he appears to have committed.
(2) Where such person is not attending the Court, he may be arrested or
summoned, as the circumstances of the case may require, for the purpose
aforesaid.
(3) Any person attending the Court, although not under arrest or upon a
summons, may be detained by such Court for the purpose of the inquiry into,
or trial or, the offence which he appears to have committed.
(4) Where the Court proceeds against any person under sub-section (1), then-
(a) the proceedings in respect of such person shall be commenced afresh, and
the witnesses reheard;
(b) subject to the provisions of clause (a), the case may proceed as if such
person had been an accused person when the Court took cognizance of the
offence upon which the inquiry or trial was commenced.
CHAPTER
XXIV
GENERAL
PROVISIONS AS TO INQUIRIES AND TRIALS
320. Compounding
of offence:-
(1) The offences punishable under the Sections of the Indian Penal Code (45
of 1860) specified in the first two columns of the Table next following may
be compounded by the persons mentioned in the third column of that Table:
Offences Section of the Person by whom offence may be compounded
Indian Penal
applicable Code
(1) (2) (3)
Uttering words etc., with deliberate 298 The person whose religious feelings
are intended to
intent to wound the religious be wounded feelings of any person
causing hurt 323, 334 The person to whom the hurt is caused
Wrongfully restraining or confining 341, 342 The person restrained or
confined
any person
Assault or use of criminal force 352, 355, 358 The person assaulted or to
whom criminal force is used.
Mischief, when the only loss or 426, 427 The person to whom the loss or
damage is caused
damage caused is loss or damage to
a private person
Criminal trespass 447 The person in possession of the property trespassed
upon.
House-trespass 448 -do-
Criminal breach of contract of service 491 The person with whom the offender
has contracted
Adultery 497 The husband of the woman
Enticing or taking away or detaining 498 -do-
with criminal intent of a married woman
Defamation, except such cases as are 500 The person defamed
specified against section 500 of the IPC
(45 of 1860 in column 1 of the Table under
sub-section (2).
Printing or engraving matter, knowing 501 -do-
it to be defamatory
Sale of printed or engraved substance 502 -do-
containing defamatory matter, knowing
it to contain such matter
Insult intended to provoke a breach 504 The person insulted
of the peace
Criminal intimidation except when the 506 The person intimidated
offence is punishable with imprisonment
for seven years
Acts caused by making a person believe 508 The person against whom the
offence was committed.
that he will be an object of divine displeasure.
(2) The offences punishable under the sections of the Indian Penal Code (45
of 1860) specified in the first two columns of the table next following may,
with the permission of the Court before which any prosecution for such
offence is pending, be compounded by the persons mentioned in the third
column of that Table.--
Offence Section of Person by whom offence may be compounded
Indian Penal
Code applicable
(1) (2) (3)
Voluntarily causing hurt by dangerous 324 The person to whom is caused
weapons or means
Voluntarily causing grievous hurt 325 -do-
Voluntarily causing grievous hurt 335 -do-
on grave and sudden provocation
Causing hurt by doing an act so 337 -do-
rashly and negligently as to endanger
human life or the personal safety of
others
Causing grievous hurt by doing an 338 -do-
act so rashly and negligently as to
endanger human life or the personal
safety of others
Wrongfully confining a person for 343 The person confined
three days or more
Wrongfully confining for ten or more 344 -do-
days
Wrongfully confining a person in 346 -do-
secret
Assault or criminal force to woman 354 The woman assaulted to whom the
criminal force was used.
with intent to outrage her modesty
Assault or criminal force in attempting 357 The person assaulted or to whom
the force was used.
wrongfully to confine a person
Theft, where the value of property 379 The owner of the property stolen
stolen does not exceed two hundred
and fifty rupees
Theft by clerk or servant of property 381 -do-
in possession of master, where the
value of the property stolen does not
exceed two hundred and fifty rupees
Dishonest misappropriation of property 403 The owner of the property
misappropriated.
Criminal breach of trust, where the value 406 The owner of the property in
respect of which the breach of
of the property does not exceed two trust has been committed.
hundred and fifty rupees
Criminal breach of trust by a carrier, 407 The owner of the property in
respect of which the breach of
wharfinger, etc. where the value of the trust has been committed
property does not exceed two hundred
and fifty rupees
Criminal breach of trust by a clerk or 408 The owner of the property in
respect of which the breach of
servant, where the value of the property trust has been committed
does not exceed two hundred and fifty
rupees
Dishonestly receiving stolen property 411 The owner of the property stolen
knowing it to be stolen, when the value
of the stolen property does not exceed
two hundred and fifty rupees
Assisting in the concealment or disposal 414 -do-
of stolen property, knowing it to be stolen,
where the value of the stolen property does
not exceed two hundred and fifty rupees
Cheating 417 The person cheated
Cheating a person whose interest 418 -do-
the offender was bound, either by law or by
legal contract, to protect
Cheating by personation 419 -do-
Cheating and dishonestly inducing delivery 420 -do-
of property or the making, alteration or
destruction of a valuable security
Fraudulent removal or concealment of 421 The Creditors who are affected
thereby
property etc. to prevent distribution
among creditors
Fraudulently preventing from 422 -do-
being made available for his creditors
a debt or demand due to the offender
Fraudulent execution of deed of transfer 423 The person affected thereby
containing false statement of consideration
Fraudulent removal or concealment of 424 -do-
property
Mischief by killing or maiming animal of 428 The owner of the animal
the value of ten rupees or upwards
Mischief by killing or maiming cattle, etc., 429 The owner of the cattle or
animal
of any value or any other animal of the
value of fifty rupees or upwards
Mischief by injury to work of irrigation by 430 The person to whom the loss
or damage is caused
wrongfully diverting water when the only
loss or damage caused is loss or damage
to a private person
House trespass to commit an offence 451 The person in possession of the
house trespassed upon
(other than theft) punishable with
imprisonment
Using a false trade or property mark 482 The person to whom loss or injury
is caused by such use
Counterfeiting a trade or property mark 483 The person whose trade or
property mark is counterfeited
used by another
Knowingly selling, or exposing or 486 -do-
possessing for sale or for manufacturing
purpose, goods marked with a counterfeit
property mark
Marrying again during the life time of 494 The husband or wife of the person
so marrying
a husband or wife
Defamation against the President or the 500 The person defamed
Vice-President or the Governor of a State
or the Administrator of a Union Territory
or a Minister in respect of his conduct in
the discharge of his public functions when
instituted upon a complaint made by the
Public Prosecutor
Uttering words or sounds or making gestures 509 The woman whom it was
intended to insult or whose
or exhibiting any object intending to insult the privacy was intruded upon
modesty of a woman or intruding upon the
privacy of a woman.
(3) When any offence is compoundable under this section, the abatement of
such offence or an attempt to Commit such offence (when such attempt is
itself an offence) may be compounded in like manner.
(4)(a) When the person who would otherwise be competent to compound an
offence under this section is under the age of eighteen years or is an idiot
or a lunatic, any person competent to contract on his behalf may, with the
permission of the Court, compound such offence.
(b) When the person who would otherwise be competent to compound an offence
under this section is dead, the legal representative, as defined in the Code
of Civil Procedure, 1908 (5 of 1908) of such person may, with the consent of
the Court, compound such offence.
(5) When the accused has been committed for trial or when he has been
convicted and an appeal is pending, no composition for the offence shall be
allowed without the leave of the Court to which he is committed, or, as the
case may be, before which the appeal is to be heard.
(6) A High Court or Court of Session acting in the exercise of its powers of
revision under Section 401 may allow any person to compound any offence
which such person is competent to compound under this Section.
(7) No offence shall be compounded if the accused is, by reason of a
previous conviction, liable either to enhanced punishment or to a punishment
of a different kind for such offence.
(8) The composition of an offence under this Section shall have the effect
of an acquittal of the accused with whom the offence has been compounded.
(9) No offence shall be compounded except as provided by this Section.
321. Withdrawal from prosecution :- The Public Prosecutor or Assistant
Public Prosecutor in charge of a case may, with the consent of the Court, at
any time before the judgement is pronounced, withdraw from the prosecution
of any person either generally or in respect of any one or more of the
offences for which he is tried ; and, upon such withdrawal --
(a) if it is made before a charge has been framed, the accused shall be
discharged in respect of such offence or offences ;
(b) if it is made after a charge has been framed, or when under this Code no
charge is required, he shall be acquitted in respect of such offence or
offences:
Provided that where such offence
(i) was against any law relating to a matter to which the executive power of
the Union extends ; or
(ii) was investigated by the Delhi Special Police Establishment under the
Delhi Special Police Establishment Act, 1946 (25 of 1946) ; or
(iii) involved the misappropriation or destruction of, or damage to, any
property belonging to the Central Government ; or
(iv) was committed by a person in the service of the Central Government
while acting or purporting to act in the discharge of his official duty,
and the Prosecutor in charge of the case has not been appointed by the
Central Government, he shall not, unless he has been permitted by the
Central Government to do so, move the Court for its consent to withdraw from
the prosecution and the Court shall, before according consent, direct the
Prosecutor to produce before it the permission granted by the Central
Government to withdraw from the prosecution.
STATE AMENDMENT
Uttar Pradesh :- After the words "in charge of a case may" insert the words
"on the written permission of the State Government to that effect (which
shall be filed in Court)" U.P. Act 18 of 1991, w.e.f 16-2-1991.
322. Procedure in cases which Magistrate cannot dispose of :-(1) If, in the
course of any inquiry into an offence or a trial before a Magistrate in any
district, the evidence appears to him to warrant a presumption --
(a) that he has no jurisdiction to try the case or commit it for trial ; or
(b) that the case is one which should be tried or committed for trial by
some other Magistrate in the district, or
(c) that the case should be tried by the Chief Judicial Magistrate,
he shall stay the proceedings and submit the case, with a brief report
explaining its nature, to the Chief Judicial Magistrate or to such other
Magistrate, having jurisdiction, as the Chief Judicial Magistrate directs.
(2) The Magistrate to whom the case is submitted may, if so empowered,
either try the case himself, or refer it to any Magistrate subordinate to
him having jurisdiction, or commit the accused for trial.
323. Procedure when, after commencement of inquiry or trial, Magistrate
finds case should be committed :- If, in any inquiry into an offence or a
trial before a Magistrate, it appears to him at any stage of the proceedings
before signing the judgement that the case is one which ought to be tried by
the Court of Session, he shall commit it to that Court under the provisions
hereinbefore contained and thereupon the provisions of Chapter XVIII shall
apply to the commitment so made.
324. Trial of persons previously convicted of offences against coinage,
stamp-law or property :-(1) Where a person, having been convicted of an
offence punishable under Chapter XII or Chapter XVII of the Indian Penal
Code, (45 of 1860) with imprisonment for a term of three years or upwards,
is again accused of any offence punishable under either of those chapters
with imprisonment for a term of three years or upwards, and the Magistrate
before whom the case is pending is satisfied that there is ground for
presuming that such person has committed the offence, he shall be sent for
trial to the Chief Judicial Magistrate or committed to the Court of Session,
unless the Magistrate is competent to try the case and is of opinion that he
can himself pass an adequate-sentence if the accused is convicted.
(2) When any person is sent for trial to the Chief Judicial Magistrate or
committed to the Court of Session under sub-section (1), any other person
accused jointly with him in the same inquiry or trial shall be similarly
sent or committed, unless the Magistrate discharges such other person under
Section 239 or Section 245, as the case may be.
325. Procedure when Magistrate cannot pass sentence sufficiently severe
:-(1) Whenever a Magistrate is of opinion, after hearing the evidence for
the prosecution and the accused, that the accused is guilty, and that he
ought to receive a punishment different in kind from, or more severe than,
that which such Magistrate is empowered to inflict, or, being a Magistrate
of the second class, is of opinion that the accused ought to be required to
execute a bond under Section 106, he may record the opinion and submit his
proceedings, and forward the accused, to the Chief Judicial Magistrate to
whom he is subordinate.
(2) When more accused than one are being tried together, and the Magistrate
considers it necessary to proceed under sub-section (1), in regard to any of
such accused, he shall forward all the accused, who are in his opinion
guilty, to the Chief Judicial Magistrate.
(3) The Chief Judicial Magistrate to whom the proceedings are submitted may,
if he thinks fit, examine the parties and recall and examine any witness who
has already given evidence in the case, and may call for and take any
further evidence, and shall pass such judgement, sentence or order in the
case as he thinks fit, and is according to law.
326. Conviction or commitment on evidence partly recorded by one Magistrate
and partly by another :- (1) Whenever any Judge or Magistrate, after having
heard and recorded the whole or any part of the evidence in any enquiry or a
trial, ceases to exercise jurisdiction therein and is succeeded by another
Judge or Magistrate who has and who exercises such jurisdiction, the Judge
or Magistrate so succeeding may act on the evidence so recorded by his
predecessor, or partly recorded by his predecessor and partly recorded by
himself:
Provided that if the succeeding Judge or Magistrate is of opinion that
further examination of any of the witnesses whose evidence has already been
recorded is necessary in the interests of Justice, he may re-summon any such
witness, and after such further examination, cross-examination and
re-examination, if any, as he may permit, the witness shall be discharged.
(2) When a case is transferred under the provisions of this Code from one
judge to another Judge or from one Magistrate to another Magistrate, the
former shall be deemed to cease to exercise jurisdiction therein, and to be
succeeded by the latter, within the meaning of sub-section (1).
(3) Nothing in this section applies to summary trials or to cases in which
proceedings have been stayed under Section 322 or in which proceedings have
been submitted to a superior Magistrate under Section 325.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Rajasthan & Uttar Pradesh :-(a) In sub-section (1) for the words
"Magistrate" wherever occurring substitute the words "Judge or Magistrate".
(b) In sub-section (2) before the words "from the Magistrate to another
Magistrate" insert the words "from one Judge to another Judge" Raj Act 10 of
1977, w.e.f. 3-9-1977 and U.P. Act 16 of 1976 w.e.f. 1-5-1976.
327. Court to be open :- (1) The place in which any Criminal Court is held
for the purpose of inquiring into, or trying any offence shall be deemed to
be an open Court, to which the public generally may have access, so far as
the same can conveniently contain them :
Provided that the presiding Judge or Magistrate may, if he thinks fit, order
at any stage of any inquiry into, or trial of, any particular case, that the
public generally, or any particular person, shall not have access to, or be
or remain in, the room or building used by the Court.
(2) Notwithstanding anything contained in sub- section (1), the inquiry into
and trial of rape or an offence under Section 376, Section 376-A, Section
376-B, Section 376-C or Section 376-D of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860)
shall be conducted in camera :
Provided that the presiding Judge may, if he thinks fit, or on an
application made by either of the parties, allow any particular person to
have access to, or be or remain in the room or building used by Court.
(3) Where any proceedings are held under sub- section (2), it shall not be
lawful for any person to print or publish any matter in relation to any such
proceedings except with the previous permission of the Court.
CHAPTER XXV
PROVISIONS
AS TO ACCUSED PERSONS OF UNSOUND MIND
328. Procedure in
case of accused being lunatic:-
(1) When a Magistrate holding an inquiry has reason to believe that the
person against whom the inquiry is being held is of unsound mind and
consequently incapable of making his defence, the Magistrate shall inquire
into the fact of such unsoundness of mind, and shall cause such person to be
examined by the civil surgeon of the district or such other medical officer
as the State Government may direct, and thereupon shall examine such surgeon
or other officer as a witness, and shall reduce the examination to writing.
(2) Pending such examination and inquiry, the Magistrate may deal with such
person in accordance with the provisions of Section 330.
(3) If such Magistrate is of opinion that the person referred to in
sub-section (1) is of unsound mind and consequently incapable of making his
defence, he shall record a finding to that effect and shall postpone further
proceedings in the case.
329. Procedure in case of person of unsound mind tried before Court:--(1)
If at the trial of any person before a Magistrate or Court of Session, it
appears to the Magistrate or Court that such person is of unsound mind and
consequently incapable of making his defence, the Magistrate or Court shall,
in the first instance, try the fact of such unsoundness and incapacity, and
if the Magistrate or Court, after considering such medical and other
evidence as may be produced before him or it, is satisfied of the fact, he
or it shall record a finding to that effect and shall postpone further
proceedings in the case.
(2) The trial of the fact of the unsoundness of mind and incapacity of the
accused shall be deemed to be part of his trial before the Magistrate or
Court.
330. Release of lunatic pending investigation or trial:--(1) Whenever
a person is found under Section 328, or Section 329 to be of unsound mind
and incapable of making his defence, the Magistrate or Court, as the case
may be, whether the case is one in which bail may be taken or not, may
release him on sufficient security being given that he shall be properly
taken care of and shall be prevented from doing injury to himself or to any
person, and for his appearance when required before the Magistrate or Court
or such office as the Magistrate or Court appoints in this behalf.
(2) If the case is one in which, in the opinion of the Magistrate or Court,
bail should not be taken, or if sufficient security is not given, the
Magistrate or Court, as the case may be, shall order the accused to be
detained in safe custody in such place and manner as he or it may think fit,
and shall report the action taken to the State Government:
Provided that no order for the detention of the accused in a lunatic asylum
shall be made otherwise than in accordance with such rules as the State
Government may have made under the Indian Lunacy Act, 1912 (4 of 1912).
331. Resumption of inquiry or trial.--(1) Whenever an inquiry or a
trial is postponed under Section 328 or Section 329, the Magistrate or
Court, as the case may be, may at any time after the person concerned has
ceased to be of unsound mind, resume the inquiry or trial and require the
accused to appear or be brought before such Magistrate or Court.
(2) When the accused has been released under Section 330, and the sureties
for his appearance produce him to the officer whom the Magistrate or Court
appoints in this behalf, the certificate of such officer that the accused is
capable of making his defence shall be receivable in evidence.
332. Procedure on accused appearing before Magistrate or Court :--(1)
If, when the accused appears or is again brought before the Magistrate or
Court, as the case may be, the Magistrate or Court considers him capable of
making his defence, the inquiry or trial shall proceed.
(2) If the Magistrate or Court considers the accused to be still incapable
of making his defence, the Magistrate or Court shall act according to the
provisions of Section or Section 329, as the case may be, and if the accused
is found to be of unsound mind and consequently incapable making his
defence, shall deal with such accused in accord with the provisions of
Section 330.
333. When accused appears to have been of so mind :- When the accused
appears to be of sound mind at the time of inquiry or trial and the
Magistrate is satisfied, from the evidence given before him that there is
reason to believe that the accused committed an act, which, if he had been
of sound mind, would have been an offence, and that he was, at the time when
the act was committed, by reason of unsoundness of mind, incapable of
knowing the nature of the act or that it was wrong or contrary to law, the
Magistrate shall proceed with the case, and, if the accused ought to be
tried by the court of session, commit him for trial before the Court of
Session.
334. Judgement of acquittal on ground of unsoundness of mind:-
Whenever any person is acquitted upon the ground that, at the time at which
he is alleged to have committed an offence, he was, by reason of unsoundness
of mind, incapable of knowing the nature of the act alleged as constituting
the offence, or that it was wrong or contrary to law, the finding shall
state specifically whether he committed the act or not.
335. Person acquitted on such ground to be detained in safe custody:-
(1) Whenever the finding states that the accused person committed the act
alleged, the Magistrate or Court before whom or which the trial has been
held, shall, if such act would, but for the incapacity found, have
constituted an offence,-
(a) order such person to be detained in safe custody in such place and
manner as the Magistrate or Court thinks fit; or
(b) order such person to be delivered to any relative or friend of such
person.
(2) No order for the detention of the accused in a lunatic asylum shall be
made under clause (a) of sub- section (1) otherwise than in accordance with
such rules as the State Government may have made under the Indian Lunacy
Act, 1912 (4 of 1912).
(3) No order for the delivery of the accused to a relative or friend shall
be made under clause (b) of sub-section (1) except upon the application of
such relative or friend and on his giving security to the satisfaction of
the Magistrate or Court that the person delivered shall
(a) be properly taken care of and prevented from doing injury to himself or
to any other person.
(b) be produced for the inspection of such officer, and at such times and
places, as the State Government may direct.
(4) The Magistrate or Court shall report to the State Government the action
taken under sub-section (1).
336. Power of State Government to empower officer-in-charge to discharge
:- The State Government may empower the officer in charge of the jail in
which a person is confined under the provisions of Section 330 or Section
335 to discharge all or any of the functions of the Inspector-General of
Prisons under Section 337 or Section 338.
337. Procedure where lunatic prisoner is reported capable of making his
defence:- If such person is detained under the provisions of sub-section
(2) of Section 330, and in the case of a person detained in a jail, the
Inspector General of Prisons, or, in the case of a person detained a lunatic
asylum, the visitors of such asylum, or any two of them shall certify that,
in his or their opinion, such person is capable of making his defence, he
shall be taken before the Magistrate or Court, as the case may be, at such
time as the Magistrate or Court appoints, and the Magistrate or Court shall
deal with such person under the provisions of Section 332 and the
certificate of such Inspector-General or visitors as aforesaid shall be
receivable as evidence.
338. Procedure where lunatic detained is declared fit to be released:-(1)
If such person is detained under the provisions of sub-section (2) of
section 330 or Section 335, and such Inspector-General or visitors shall
certify that, in his or their judgement, he may be released without danger
of his doing injury to himself or to any other person, the State Government
may thereupon order him to be released, or to be detained in custody, or to
be transferred to a public lunatic asylum if he has not been already sent to
such an asylum, and in case it orders him to be transferred to an asylum,
may appoint a Commission, consisting of a Judicial and two medical officers.
(2) Such Commission shall make a formal inquiry into the state of mind of
such person, take such evidence as is necessary, and shall report to the
State Government, which may order his release or detention as it thinks fit.
339. Delivery of lunatic to care of relative or friend:- (1) Whenever
any relative or friend of any person detained under the provisions of
Section 330 or Section 335 desires that he shall be delivered to his care
and custody, the State Government may, upon the application of such relative
or friend and on his giving security to the satisfaction of such State
Government, that the person delivered shall,--
(a) be properly taken care of, and prevented from doing injury to himself or
to any other person;
(b) be produced for the inspection of such officer, and at such time and
places, as the State Government may direct,
(c) in the case of a person detained under sub-section (2) of Section 330,
be produced when required before such Magistrate or Court, order such person
to be delivered to such relative or friend.
(2) If the person so delivered is accused of any offence, the trial of which
has been postponed by reason of his being of unsound mind and incapable of
making his defence, and the inspecting officer referred to in clause (b) of
sub-section (1) certifies at any time to the Magistrate or Court that such
person is capable of making his defence, such Magistrate or Court shall call
upon the relative or friend to whom such accused was delivered to produce
him before the Magistrate or Court and upon such production the Magistrate
or Court shall proceed in accordance with the provisions of Section 332, and
the certificate of the inspecting office shall be receivable as evidence.
CHAPTER
XXVI
PROVISIONS
AS TO OFFENCES AFFECTING THE ADMINISTRATION OF JUSTICE
340. Procedure in
cases mentioned in Section 195:-
(1) When, upon an application made to it in this behalf or otherwise, any
Court is of opinion that it is expedient in the interest of Justice that an
inquiry should be made into any offence referred to in clause (b) of
sub-section (1) of Section 195, which appears to have been committed in or
in relation to a proceeding in that Court, or as the case may be, in respect
of a document produced or given in evidence in a proceeding in that Court,
such Court may, after such preliminary inquiry, if any, as it thinks
necessary,--
(a) record a finding to that effect;
(b) make a complaint thereof in writing;
(c) send it to a Magistrate of the first class jurisdiction;
(d) take sufficient security for the appearance of the accused before such
Magistrate or if the alleged offence is non-bailable and the Court thinks it
necessary so to do, send the accused in custody to such Magistrate, and
(e) bind over any person to appear and give evidence before such Magistrate.
(2) The power conferred on a Court by sub-section (1) in respect of an
offence may, in any case where that Court has neither made a complaint under
sub-section (1) in respect of that offence nor rejected an application for
the making of such complaint, be exercised by the Court to which such former
Court is subordinate within the meaning of sub-section (4) of Section 195.
(3) A complaint made under this section shall be signed-
(a) where the Court making the complaint is a High Court, by such officer of
the Court as the Court may appoint;
(b) in any other case, by the presiding officer of the Court.
(4) In this section, "Court" has the same meaning as in Section 195.
341. Appeal :--(1) Any person on whose application any Court other
than a High Court has refused to make a complaint under sub-section (1) or
sub-section (1) or sub-section (2) of Section 340, or against whom such a
complaint has been made by such Court, may appeal to the Court to which such
former Court is subordinate within the meaning of sub-section (4) of Section
195, and the superior Court May thereupon, after notice to the parties
concerned, direct the withdrawal of the complaint, or, as the case may be,
making of the complaint which such-former Court might have made under
Section 340, and, if it makes such complaint, the provisions of that section
shall apply accordingly.
(2) An order under this section, and subject to any such order, an order
under Section 340, shall be final and shall not be subject to revision.
342. Power to order costs:- Any Court dealing with an application
made to it for filing a complaint under Section 340 or an appeal under
Section 341, shall have power to make such order as to costs as may be just.
343. Procedure of Magistrate taking cognizance:- (1) A Magistrate to
whom a complaint is made under Section 340 or Section 341 shall,
notwithstanding anything contained in Chapter XV, proceed, as far as may be,
to deal with the case as if it were instituted on a police report.
(2) Where it is brought to the notice of such Magistrate, or of any other
Magistrate to whom the case may have been transferred, that an appeal is
pending against the decision arrived at in the judicial proceeding out of
which the matter has arisen, he may, if he thinks fit, at any stage, adjourn
the hearing of the case until such appeal is decided.
344. Summary procedure for trial for giving false evidenced:- (1) If,
at the time of delivery of any judgement of final order disposing of any
judicial proceeding, a Court of Session or Magistrate of the first class
expresses an opinion to the effect that any witness appearing in such
proceeding had knowingly or wilfully given false evidence or had fabricated
false evidence with the intention that such evidence should be used in such
proceeding, it or he may, if satisfied that it is necessary and expedient in
the interest of justice that the witness should be tried summarily for
giving or fabricating, as the case may be, false evidence, take cognizance
of the offence and may, after giving the offender a reasonable opportunity
of showing cause why he should not be punished for such offence, try such
offender summarily and sentence him to imprisonment for a term which may
extend to three months, or to fine which may extend to five hundred rupees,
or with both.
(2) In every such case the Court shall follow, as nearly as may be
practicable, the procedure prescribed for summary trials.
(3) Nothing in this section shall affect the power of the Court to make a
complaint under Section 340 for the offence, where it does not choose to
proceed under this section.
(4) Where, after any action is initiated under sub-section (1), it is made
to appear to the Court of Session or Magistrate of the first class that an
appeal or an application for revision has been preferred or filed against
the judgement or order in which the opinion referred to in that sub-section
has been expressed, it or he shall stay further proceedings of the trial
until the disposal of the appeal or the application for revision, as the
case may be, and thereupon the further proceedings of the trial shall abide
by the results of the appeal or application for revision.
345. Procedure in certain cases of contempt:--(1) When any such
offence as is described in Section 175, Section 178, Section 179, Section
180, or Section 228 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860), is committed in
the view or presence of any Civil, Criminal, or Revenue Court, the Court may
cause the offender to be detained in custody, and may, at any time before
the rising of the Court or the same day, take cognizance of the offence and,
after giving the offender a reasonable opportunity of showing cause why he
should not be punished under this section, sentence offender to fine not
exceeding two hundred rupees, and, in default of payment of fine, to simple
imprisonment for a term which may extend to one month, unless such fine be
sooner paid.
(2) In every such case the Court shall record the fact constituting the
offence, with the statement (if any) made by the offender, as well as the
finding and sentence.
(3) If the offence is under Section 228 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860), the record shall show the nature and stage of the judicial proceeding
in which the Court interrupted or insulted was sitting, and the nature of
the interruption or insult.
346. Procedure where Court considers that case should not be dealt with
under Section 345.- (1) If the Court in any case considers that a person
accused of any of the offences referred to in Section 345 and committed in
its view or presence should be imprisoned otherwise than in default of
payment of fine, or that a fine exceeding two hundred rupees should be
imposed upon him, or such Court is for any other reason of opinion that the
case should not be disposed of under Section 345, such Court, after
recording the facts constituting the offence and the statement of the
accused as hereinbefore provided, may forward the case to a Magistrate
having jurisdiction to try the same, and may require security to be given
for the appearance of such person before such Magistrate, or if sufficient
security is not given, shall forward such person in custody to such
Magistrate.
(2) The Magistrate to whom any case is forwarded under this section shall
proceed to deal with, as far as may be, as if it were instituted on a police
report.
347. When Registrar or Sub-Registrar to be deemed a Civil Court.-
When the State Government so directs, any Registrar or any Sub-Registrar
appointed under the Registration Act, 1908 (16 of 1908), shall be deemed to
be a Civil Court within the meaning of Section 345 and 346.
348. Discharge of offender on submission apology:- When any Court has
under Section 345 adjudged an offender to punishment, or has under Section
forwarded him to a Magistrate for trial, for refusing or omitting to do
anything which he was lawfully required to do or for any intentional insult
or interruption, the Court may, in its discretion, discharge the offender or
remit the punishment on his submission to the order or requisition of such
court, or on apology being made to its satisfaction.
349. Imprisonment or committal of person refusing to answer or produce
document:- If any witness or person called to produce a document or
thing before a Criminal Court refuses to answer such questions as are put to
him or to produce any document or thing in his possession or power which the
Court requires him to produce, and does not, after a reasonable opportunity
has been given to him so to do, offer any reasonable excuse for such
refusal, such Court may, for reasons to be recorded in writing, sentence him
to simple imprisonment, or by warrant under the hand of the Presiding
Magistrate or Judge commit him to the custody of an officer of the Court for
any term not exceeding seven days, unless in the meantime, such person
consents to be examined and to answer, or to produce the document or thing
and in the event of his persisting in his refusal, he may be dealt with
according to the provisions of section 345 or section 346.
350. Summary procedure for punishment for non-attendance by a witness in
obedience to summons:-. (1) If any witness being summoned to appear
before a Criminal Court is legally bound to appear at a certain place and
time in obedience to the summons and without just excuse neglects or refuses
to attend at that place or time or departs from the place where he has to
attend before the time at which it is lawful for him to depart, and the
Court before which the witness is to appear is satisfied that it is
expedient in the interest of Justice that such a witness should be tried
summarily, the Court may take cognizance of the offence and after giving the
offender an opportunity of showing cause why he should not be punished under
this section, sentence him to fine not exceeding one hundred rupees.
(2) In every such case the Court shall follow, as nearly as may be
practicable, the procedure prescribed for summary trials.
351. Appeals from convictions under Sections 344, 345, 349 and 350:-
(1) Any person sentenced by any Court other than a High Court under Section
344, Section 345, Section 349, or Section 350 may, notwithstanding anything
contained in this Code, appeal to the Court to which decrees or orders made
in such Court are ordinarily appealable.
(2) The provisions of Chapter XXIX shall, so far as they are applicable,
apply to appeals under this section, and the Appellate Court may alter to
reverse the finding or reduce or reverse the sentence appealed against.
(3) An appeal from such conviction by a Court of Small Causes shall lie to
the Court of Session for the sessions division within which such Court is
situate.
(4) An appeal from such conviction by any Registrar or Sub-Registrar deemed
to be a Civil Court by virtue of a direction issued under Section 347 shall
lie to the Court of Session for the sessions division within which the
office of such Registrar or Sub-Registrar is situate.
352. Certain Judges and Magistrates not to try certain offences when
committed before themselves:- Except as provided in Sections 344, 345,
349, and 350, no Judge of a Criminal Court (other than a Judge of a High
Court) or Magistrate shall try any person for any offence referred to in
Section 195, when such offence is committed before himself or in contempt of
his authority, or is brought under his notice as such Judge or Magistrate in
the course of a judicial proceeding.
CHAPTER
XXVII
THE
JUDGEMENT
353.
Judgement:-
(1) The judgement in every trial in any Criminal Court or original
jurisdiction shall be pronounced in open Court by the presiding officer
immediately after the termination of the trial or at some subsequent time of
which notice shall be given to the parties or their pleaders:-
(a) by delivering the whole of the judgement; or
(b) by reading out the whole of the judgement; or
(c) by reading out the operative part of the judgement and explaining the
substance of the judgement in a language which is understood by the accused
or his pleader.
(2) Where the judgement is delivered under clause (a) of sub-section (1),
the presiding officer shall cause it to be taken down in short-hand, sign
the transcript and every page thereof as soon as it is made ready, and write
on it the date of the delivery of the judgement in open Court.
(3) Where the judgement or the operative part thereof is read out under
clause (b) or clause (c) of sub-section (1) as the case may be, it shall be
dated and signed by the presiding officer in open Court, and if it is not
written with his own hand, every page of the judgement shall be signed by
him.
(4) Where the judgement is pronounced in the manner specified in the clause
(c) of sub-section (1), the whole judgement or a copy thereof shall be
immediately made available for the perusal of the parties or their pleaders
free of cost.
(5) If the accused is in custody, he shall be brought up to hear the
judgement pronounced.
(6) If the accused is not in custody, he shall be required by the Court to
attend to hear the judgement pronounced, except where his personal
attendance during the trial has been dispensed with and the sentence is one
of fine only or he is acquitted:
Provided that, where there are more accused than one, and one or more of
them do not attend the Court on the date on which judgement is to be
pronounced, the presiding officer may, in order to avoid undue delay in the
disposal of the case, pronounce the judgement notwithstanding their absence.
(7) No judgement delivered by any Criminal Court shall be deemed to be
invalid by reason only of the absence of any party or his pleader on the day
or from the place notified for the delivery thereof, or of any omission to
serve, or defect in serving, on the parties or their pleaders, or any of
them, the notice of such day and place.
(8) Nothing in this section shall be construed to limit in any way the
extent of the provisions of Section 465.
354. Language and contents of judgement:- (1) Except as otherwise
expressly provided by this Code, every judgement referred to in Section
353,-
(a) shall be written in the language of the Court;
(b) shall contain the point or points for determination, the decision
thereon and the reasons for the decision;
(c) shall specify the offence (if any) of which, and the Section of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860) or other law under which, the accused is
convicted, and the punishment to which he is sentenced.
(d) if it be a judgement of acquittal, shall state the offence of which the
accused is acquitted and direct that he be set at liberty.
(2) When the conviction is under the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860) and it
is doubtful under which of two sections, or under which of two parts of the
same section, of that Code the offence falls, the Court shall distinctly
express the same, and pass judgement in the alternative.
(3) When the conviction is for an offence punishable with death or, in the
alternative, with imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a term of years,
the judgement shall state the reasons for the sentence awarded, and, in the
case of sentence of death, the special reasons for such sentence.
(4) When the conviction is for an offence punishable with imprisonment for a
term of one year or more, but the Court imposes a sentence of imprisonment
for a term of less than three months, it shall record its reasons for
awarding such sentence, unless the sentence is one of imprisonment till the
rising of the Court or unless the case was tried summarily under the
provisions of this Code.
(5) When any person is sentenced to death, the sentence shall direct that he
be hanged by the neck till he is dead.
(6) Every order under Section 117 or sub-section (2) of Section 138 and
every final order made under Section 125, Section 145 or Section 147 shall
contain the point or points for determination, the decision thereon and the
reasons for the decision.
355. Metropolitan Magistrate's judgement:- Instead of recording a
judgement in the manner hereinbefore provided, a Metropolitan Magistrate
shall record the following particulars, namely:--
(a) the serial number of the case;
(b) the date of the commission of the offence;
(c) the name of the complainant (if any);
(d) the name of the accused person, and his parentage and residence;
(e) the offence complained of or proved,
(f) the plea of the accused and his examination (if any);
(g) the final order;
(h) the date of such order;
(i) in all cases in which an appeal lies from the final order either under
Section 373 or under sub-section (3) of Section 374, a brief statement of
the reasons for the decision.
356. Order for notifying address of previously convicted offender:-
(1) When any person, having been convicted by a Court in India of an offence
punishable under Section 215, Section 489A, Section 489B, Section 489C, or
Section 489D of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860), or of any offence
punishable under Chapter XII or Chapter XVII of that code, with imprisonment
for a term of three years, or upwards, is again convicted of any offence
punishable under any of those sections or chapters with imprisonment for a
term of three years or upwards by any Court other than that of a Magistrate
of the Second class, such Court may, if it thinks fit, at the time of
passing a sentence of imprisonment on such person, also order that his
residence and any change of, or absence from, such residence after release
be notified as hereinafter provided for a term not exceeding five years from
the date of the expiration of such sentence.
(2) The provisions of sub-section (1) with reference to the offences named
therein, apply also to criminal conspiracies to commit such offences and to
the abatement of such offences and attempts to commit them.
(3) If such conviction is set aside on appeal or otherwise, such order shall
become void.
(4) An order under this section may also be made by Appellate Court or by
the High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of revision.
(5) The State Government may, by notification, make rules to carry out the
provisions of this section relating to the notification of residence or
change of, or absence from, residence by released convicts.
(6) Such rules may provide for punishment for the breach thereof and any
person charged with a breach of any such rule may be tried by a Magistrate
of competent jurisdiction in the district in which the place last notified
by him as his place of residence is situated.
357. Order to pay compensation:- (1) When a Court imposes a sentence
of fine or a sentence (including a sentence of death) of which fine forms a
part, the Court may, when passing judgement, order the whole or any part of
the fine recovered to be applied:-
(a) in defraying the expenses of properly incurred in the prosecution;
(b) in the payment to any person of compensation for any loss or injury
caused by the offence, when compensation is, in the opinion of the Court,
recoverable by such person in a Civil Court;
(c) when any person is convicted of any offence for having caused the death
of another person or of having abetted the commission of such an offence, in
paying compensation to the persons who are, under the Fatal Accidents Act,
1855 (13 of 1855), entitled to recover damages from the person sentenced for
the loss resulting to them from such death;
(d) when any person is convicted of any offence which includes theft,
criminal misappropriation, criminal breach of trust, or cheating, or of
having dishonestly received or retained or of having voluntarily assisted in
disposing of, stolen property knowing or having reason to believe the same
to be stolen, in compensating any bona fide purchaser of such property is
restored to the possession of the person entitled thereto.
(2) If the fine is imposed in a case which is subject to appeal no such
payment shall be made before the period allowed for presenting the appeal
has elapsed, or, if an appeal has elapsed, or, if an appeal be presented,
before the decision of the appeal.
(3) When a Court imposes a sentence, of which fine does not form a part, the
Court may, when passing judgement, order the accused person to pay, by way
of compensation, such amount as may be specified in the order to the person
who has suffered any loss or injury by reason of the act for which the
accused person as been so sentenced.
(4) An order under this section may also be made by an Appellate Court or by
the High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of revision.
(5) At the time of awarding compensation in any subsequent civil suit
relating to the same matter, the Court shall take into account any sum paid
or recovered as compensation under this section.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Andhra Pradesh: (I) in sub-sec. (1), after the words "the Court may", Insert
the expression "and where a person against whom an offence is committed
belongs to Scheduled Castes or Scheduled Tribes as defined in Clauses (24)
and (25) of Article 366 of the Constitution of India except when both the
accused person and the person, against whom an offence is committed belong
either to such castes or tribes, the Court shall" ; and
(ii) for sub-sec. (3), substitute the following, namely,--
(3) When a Court imposes a sentence, of which fine does not form a part, the
Court may, and where a person against whom an offence is committed belongs
to Scheduled Castes or Scheduled Tribes as defined in Clauses (24) of
Article 366 of the Constitution of India, the Court shall, when passing
judgement order the accused person to pay, by way of compensation, such
amount as may be specified in the order to the person who has suffered any
loss or injury by reason of the act for which the accused person has been so
sentenced:
Provided that the Court may not order the accused person to pay by way of
compensation any amount, if both the accused person and the person against
whom an offence is committed belong either to the Scheduled Castes or the
Scheduled Tribes". A P Act 21 of 1993, w.e.f. 3-9-1993.
Bihar:- insert the following proviso: After sub-section (1).
"Provided that the person against whom an offence is committed belongs to
Scheduled Castes and to Scheduled Tribes as defined under clauses (24) and
(25) to Article 366 of the constitution, the court shall, at the time of
judgement, pass order that the entire amount of fine realised or any part of
it will be utilised for the benefit of such person by way of compensation" –
Bihar Act 9 of 1985, w.e.f., 13-8-1985.
Karnataka:- (1) In sub-section (1), after the words "the Court may", the
brackets, the figures and words " and where the person against whom an
offence is committed belongs to a Scheduled Caste or a Scheduled Tribe as
defined in clause (24) and (25) of Article 366 of the Constitution and the
accused person does not belong to a Scheduled Caste or a Scheduled Tribe,
the Court shall" shall be inserted.
(2) Substitute the following for sub-section (3).
"(3) When a Court imposes a sentence, of which the fine does not form a
part, the court may, and where a person against whom an offence is committed
belongs to Scheduled Caste or Scheduled Tribe as defined in clauses (24) and
(25) of Article 366 of the Constitution and the accused person does not
belong to a Scheduled Caste or Scheduled Tribe, the Court shall, when
passing judgement, order the accused person to pay, by way of compensation
such amount as may be specified in the order to the person who has suffered
any loss or injury by reason of the act for which the accused person has
been so sentenced". Karnataka Act 27 of 1987, w.e.f. 13-8-1987.
Madhya Pradesh:- (a) In sub-section (1) for the words "(1) when a Court
imposes a sentence of fine of a sentence (including a sentence of death) or
which fine forms a part, the Court may, when passing judgement, order the
whole or any part of the fine recovered to be applied", the words "(1) when
a Court imposes a sentence of fine or a sentence (including a sentence of
death) of which fine forms a part, the Court may, and where a person against
whom an offence is committed belongs to Scheduled Castes or Scheduled Tribes
as defined in clauses (24) and (25) of Article 366 of the Constitution
except when both the accused person and the person against whom an offence
is committed belongs either to such Caste or Tribes, the Court shall, when
passing judgement, order the whole or any part of the fine recovered to be
applied", shall be substituted; and
(b) For sub-sec. (3), the following shall be substituted,
"(3) When a Court imposes a sentence, of which fine does not form a part,
the Court may, and where a person against whom an offence is committed
belongs to Scheduled Caste or Scheduled Tribes as defined in clause (24) and
(25) of Article 366 of the Constitution, the Court shall, when passing
judgement, order the accused person to pay, by way of compensation, such
amount as may be specified in the order to the person who has suffered any
loss or injury by reason of the act for which the accused person has been so
sentenced:
Provided that the Court may not order the accused person to pay by way of
compensation any amount, if both the accused person and the person against
whom an offence is committed belong either to the Scheduled Castes or the
Scheduled Tribes" - M.P.Act No. 29 of 1978, w.e.f. 5-10-1978.
Rajasthan - In Section 357,-
(i) in sub-section (1), between the expression "the Court may", and the
expression "When passing judgement" insert the expression "and where the
person against whom an offence is committed belongs to a Scheduled Caste or
a Scheduled Tribe but the accused person does not so belong, the Court
shall", and
(ii) in sub-section (3) between the expression "the Court may", and the
expression "when passing judgement" insert the expression "and where the
person against whom an offence is committed belongs to a Scheduled Caste or
a Scheduled Tribe but the accused person does not so belong, the Court
shall" - Rajasthan Act 3 of 1993.
Uttar Pradesh :- (a) in sub-section (1), after clause (d) insert the
following proviso, namely:-
"Provided that if a person who may receive compensation under clauses (b),
(c) and (d) is a member of the Scheduled Castes or the Scheduled Tribes and
the person sentenced is not a member of such Castes or Tribes, the Court
shall order the whole or any part of the fine recovered to be applied in
payment of such compensation".
(b) for sub-section (3) substitute the following sub-section, namely,
"(3) When the Court imposes a sentence, of which fine does not form a part,
the Court may, and where the person who has suffered the loss or injury is a
member of the Scheduled Castes or the Scheduled Tribes and the person
sentenced is not a member of such Castes or Tribes the Court shall, when
passing judgement, order the person sentenced to pay, by way of
compensation, such amount as may be specified in the order to the person who
has suffered any loss or injury by reason of the act for which the person
has been so sentenced".
(c) after sub-section (5) insert the following Explanation, namely,-
"Explanation:- For the purposes of, this section expressions "Scheduled
Castes" and "Scheduled Tribes" shall have the meanings respectively assigned
to them in clauses (24) (25) of Article 366 of the Constitution" - U.P.Act
17 of 1992.
West Bengal :- (a) in sub-section (1), for the words "When a Court imposes a
sentence of fine or a sentence (including sentence of death) of which fine
forms a part, the Court may, when passing judgement, order the whole or any
part of the recovered to be applied", the words "When a Court imposes a
sentence of fine or a sentence (including a sentence of death) of which fine
forms a part, the Court may, and where the person against whom an offence
has been committed belongs to Scheduled Castes or Scheduled Tribes, except
when both the accused per and the person against whom an offence has been
committed belongs either to Scheduled Castes or to Scheduled Tribes, shall,
when passing judgement order the whole or any part of the fine recovered be
applied"- shall be substituted.
(b) for sub-section (3), substitute the following sub-section
"(3) When a Court imposes a sentence, of which fine does not form a part,
the Court may, and where the person against whom an offence has been
committed belongs to Scheduled Caste or Scheduled Tribes shall, when passing
judgement, order the accused person to pay, by way of compensation, such
amount as may specified in the order to the person who has suffered any loss
injury by reason of the act for which the accused person has been so
sentenced:
Provided that the Court may not order the accused per to pay by way of
compensation, any amount if both the accused person and the person against
whom an offence has been committed belong either to Scheduled Castes or to
Scheduled Tribes"; and
(c) the following Explanation shall be inserted after sub-section (5);
"Explanation:- For the purposes of this section, expressions "Scheduled
Castes" and "Scheduled Tribes" shall have the meanings respectively assigned
to them in clauses (24) and (25) of Article 366 of the Constitution of
India" - W.B.Act of 1985.
358. Compensation to persons groundlessly arrested:-(1) Whenever any person
causes a police officer to arrest another person, if it appears to the
Magistrate by whom the case is heard that there was no sufficient ground for
causing such arrest, the Magistrate may award such compensation, not
exceeding one hundred rupees, to be paid by the person so causing the arrest
to the person so arrested, for his loss of time and expenses in the matter,
as the Magistrate thinks fit.
(2) In such cases, if more persons than one are arrested, the Magistrate
may, in like manner, award to each of them such compensation not exceeding
one hundred rupees, as such Magistrate thinks fit.
(3) All Compensation awarded under this Section may be recovered as if it
were a fine, and if it cannot be so recovered, the person by whom it is
payable shall be sentenced to simple imprisonment for such term not
exceeding thirty days as the Magistrate directs, unless such sum is sooner
paid.
359. Order to pay costs in non-cognizable cases:- (1) Whenever any
complaint of a non-cognizable offence is made to a Court, the Court, if it
convicts the accused, may, in addition to the penalty imposed upon him,
order him to pay to the complainant, in whole or in part, the cost incurred
by him in the prosecution, and may further order that in default of payment,
the accused shall suffer simple imprisonment for a period not exceeding
thirty days and such costs may include any expenses incurred in respect of
process-fees, witnesses and pleader's fees which the Court may consider
reasonable.
(2) An order under this section may also be made by an Appellate Court or by
the High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of revision.
360. Order to release on probation of good conduct or after admonition
:--(1) When any person not under twenty-one years of age is convicted of an
offence punishable with fine only or with imprisonment for a term of seven
years or less, or when any person under twenty-one years of age or any woman
is convicted of an offence not punishable with death or imprisonment for
life, and no previous conviction is proved against the offender, if it
appears to the Court before which he is convicted, regard being had to the
age, Character or antecedents of the offender, and to the circumstances in
which the offence was committed, that it is expedient that the offender
should be released on probation of good conduct, the Court may, instead of
sentencing him at once to any punishment, direct that he be released on his
entering into a bond, with or without sureties, to appear and receive
sentence when called upon during such period (not exceeding three years) as
the Court may direct, and in the meantime to keep the peace and be of good
behaviour:
Provided that, where any first offender is convicted by a Magistrate of the
second class not specially empowered by the High Court, and the Magistrate
is of opinion that the powers conferred by this section should be exercised,
he shall record his opinion to that effect, and submit the proceedings to a
Magistrate of the first class, forwarding the accused to, or taking bail for
his appearance before such Magistrate, who shall dispose of the case in the
manner provided by sub-section (2).
(2) Where proceedings are submitted to a Magistrate of the first class as
provided by sub-section (1), such Magistrate may thereupon pass such
sentence or make such order as he might have passed or made if the case had
originally been heard by him, and, if he thinks further inquiry or
additional evidence on any point to be necessary, he may make such inquiry
or take such evidence himself or direct such inquiry or evidence to be made
or taken.
(3) In any case in which a person is convicted of theft, theft in a
building, dishonest misappropriation, cheating or any offence under the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860), punishable with not more than two years,
imprisonment or any offence punishable with fine only and no previous
conviction is proved against him, the Court before which he is so convicted
may, if it thinks fit, having regard to the age, character, antecedents or
physical or mental condition of the offender and to the trivial nature of
the offence or any extenuating circumstances under which the offence was
committed, instead of sentencing him to any punishment, release him after
due admonition.
(4) An order under this section may be made by any Appellate Court or by the
High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of revision.
(5) When an order has been made under this section in respect of any
offender, the High Court or Court of Session may, on appeal when there is a
right of appeal to such Court, or when exercising its powers of revision,
set aside such order, and in lieu, thereof pass sentence on such offender
according to law:
Provided that the High Court or Court of Session shall not under this
sub-section inflict a greater punishment than might have been inflicted by
the Court by which the offender was convicted.
(6) The provisions of Sections 121, 124 and 373 shall, so far as may be,
apply in the case of sureties offered in pursuance of the provisions of this
section.
(7) The Court before directing the release of an offender under sub-section
(1), shall be satisfied that an offender or his surety (if any) has a fixed
place of abode or regular occupation in the place for which the Court acts
or in which the offender is likely to live during the period named for the
observance of the conditions.
(8) If the Court which convicted the offender, or a Court which could have
dealt with the offender in respect of his original offence, is satisfied
that the offender has failed to observe any of the conditions of his
recognisance, it may issue a warrant for his apprehension.
(9) An offender, when apprehended on any such warrant shall be brought
forthwith before the Court issuing warrant, and such Court may either remand
him in custody until the case is heard or admit him to bail with a
sufficient surety conditioned on his appearing for sentence and Court may,
after hearing the case, pass sentence.
(10) Nothing in this section shall affect the provisions of the Probation of
Offenders Act, 1958 (20 of 1951), the Children Act, 1960 (60 of 1960) or any
other law for the time being in force for the treatment, training or
rehabilitation of youthful offenders.
361. Special reasons to be recorded in certain cases:- Where in any
case the Court could have dealt with,-
(a) an accused person under Section 360 or under the provisions of the
Probation of Offenders Act, 1958 (20 of 1958); or
(b) a youthful offender under the Children Act, 1960 (60 of 1960) or any
other law for the time being in force for the treatment, training or
rehabilitation of youthful offenders, but has not done so, it shall record
in its judgement the special reasons for not having done so.
362. Court not to alter judgement:- Save as otherwise provided by
this Code or by any other law for the time being in force, no Court, when it
has signed its judgement or order disposing of a case, shall alter or review
the same except to correct a clerical or arithmetical error.
363. Copy of judgement to be given to the accused and other persons:-
(1) When the accused is sentenced to imprisonment, a copy of the judgement
shall, immediately after the pronouncement of the judgement be given to him
free of cost.
(2) On the application of the accused, a certified copy of the judgement, or
when he so desires, a translation in his own language if practicable or in
the language of the Court, shall be given to him without delay, and such
copy shall, in every case where the judgement is appealable by the accused,
be given free of cost:
Provided that where a sentence of death is passed or confirmed by the High
Court, a certified copy of the judgement shall be immediately given to the
accused free of cost whether or not he applies for the same.
(3) The provisions of sub-section (2) shall apply in relation to an order
under Section 117 as they apply in relation to a judgement which is
appealable by the accused.
(4) When the accused is sentenced to death by any Court and an appeal lies
from such judgement as of right, the Court shall inform him of the period
within which, if he wishes to appeal, his appeal should be preferred.
(5) Save as otherwise provided in sub-section (2), any person affected by a
judgement or order passed by a Criminal Court shall, on an application made
in this behalf and on payment of the prescribed charges, be given a copy of
such judgement or order or of any deposition or other part of the record:
Provided that the Court may, if it thinks fit for some special reasons, give
it to him free of cost.
(6) The High Court may, by rules, provide for the grant of copies of any
judgement or order of a Criminal Court to any person who is not affected by
a judgement or order, on payment, by such person, of such fees, and subject
to such conditions, as the High Court may, by such rules, provide.
STATE AMENDMENT
Karnataka :- Insert the following, after the proviso to sub-section (5),
"Provided further that the State shall, on an application made in this
behalf by the Prosecuting Officer, be given, free of cost, a certified copy
of such judgement, order deposition or record with the prescribed
endorsement" - Karnataka Act 19 of 1985, w.e.f. 25-6-1985.
364. Judgement when to be translated:- The original judgement shall
be filed with the record of proceedings a where the original is recorded in
a language different from that of the Court, and the accused so requires, a
translation thereof into the language of the Court shall be added to such
record.
365. Court of Session to send copy of finding and sentence to District
Magistrate:- In cases tried by the Court of Session or a Chief Judicial
Magistrate, the Court or such Magistrate, as the case may be, shall forward
a copy of its or his finding and sentence (if any) to the District
Magistrate within whose local jurisdiction the trial was held.
CHAPTER
XXVIII
SUBMISSION
OF DEATH SENTENCES FOR CONFIRMATION
366. Sentence of
death to be submitted by Court of Session for confirmation
:--(1) When the Court of Session passes a sentence of death, the proceedings
shall be submitted to the High Court, and the sentence shall not be executed
unless it is confirmed by the High Court.
(2) The Court passing the sentence shall commit the convicted person to jail
custody under a warrant.
367. Power to direct further inquiry to be made or additional evidence to
be taken :--(1) If, when such proceedings are submitted, the High Court
thinks that further inquiry should be made into, or additional evidence
taken upon, any point bearing upon the guilt or innocence of the convicted
person, it may make such inquiry or take such evidence itself, or direct it
to be made or taken by the Court of Session.
(2) Unless the High Court otherwise directs, the presence of the convicted
person may be dispensed with when such inquiry is made or such evidence is
taken.
(3) When the inquiry or evidence (if any) is not made or taken by the High
Court, the result of such inquiry or evidence shall be certified to such
Court.
368. Power of High Court to confirm sentence or annul conviction :--
In any case submitted under Section 366, the High Court,--
(a) may confirm the sentence, or pass any other sentence warranted by law,
or
(b) may annul the conviction and convict the accused of any offence of which
the Court of Session might have convicted him, or order a new trial on the
same or an amended charge, or
(c) may acquit the accused person :
Provided that no order of confirmation shall be made under this section
until the period allowed for preferring an appeal has expired, or, if an
appeal is presented within such period, until such appeal is disposed of.
369. Confirmation or new sentence to be signed by two Judges.- In
every case so submitted, the confirmation of the sentence, or any new
sentence or order passed by the High Court, shall, when such Court consists
of two or more Judges, be made, passed and signed by at least two of them.
370. Procedure in case of difference of opinion:- Where any such case
is heard before a Bench of Judges and such Judges are equally divided in
opinion, the case shall be decided in the manner provided by Section 392.
371. Procedure in cases submitted to High Court for confirmation:- In
cases submitted by the Court of Session to the High Court for the
confirmation of a sentence of death, the proper officer of the High Court
shall, without delay, after the order of confirmation or other order has
been made by the High Court, send a copy of the order, the seal of the High
Court and attested with his official signature, to the Court of Session.
CHAPTER
XXIX
APPEALS
372. No appeal to
lie unless otherwise provided:-
No appeal shall lie from any judgement or order of a Criminal Court except
as provided for by this Code or by any law for the time being in force.
373. Appeal from orders requiring security or refusal to accept or
rejecting surety for keeping peace or good behaviour :-- Any person,--
(i) who has been ordered under Section 117 to security for keeping the peace
or for good behaviour, or
(ii) who is aggrieved by any order refusing to accept or rejecting a surety
under Section 121,
may appeal against such order to the Court of Session:
Provided that nothing in this section shall apply to persons the proceedings
against whom are laid before a sessions Judge in accordance with the
provisions of sub-section (2) or sub-section (4) of Section 122.
374. Appeals from convictions:--(1) Any person convicted on a trial
held by a High Court in its extraordinary original criminal jurisdiction may
appeal to the Supreme Court.
(2) Any person convicted on a trial held by a Sessions Judge or an
Additional Sessions Judge or on a trial held any other Court in which a
sentence of imprisonment more than seven years has been against him or
against any other person convicted at the same trial may appeal to the High
Court.
(3) Save as otherwise provided in sub-section (2), any person:---
(a) convicted on a trial held by a Metropolitan Magistrate or Assistant
Sessions Judge or Magistrate of the first class, or of the second class, or
(b) sentenced under Section 325, or
(c) in respect of whom an order has been made or a sentence has been passed
under Section 360 by any Magistrate may appeal to the Court of Session.
CASE-LAW
Prior statement of a witness cannot be used as substantive evidence, 1997
(1) SCC 145.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Punjab :- In sub-section (3) for the words "Magistrate of First Class" the
words "Executive Magistrate" shall be substituted.
Union Territory of Chandigarh :- Same as in Punjab.
375. No appeal in certain cases when accused pleads guilty:-
Notwithstanding anything contained in Section 374, where an accused person
has pleaded guilty and has been convicted on such plea, there shall be no
appeal:--
(a) if the conviction is by a High Court ; or
(b) if the conviction is by a Court of Session, Metropolitan Magistrate or
Magistrate of the first or second class, except as to the extent or legality
of the sentence.
376. No appeal in petty cases:- Notwithstanding anything contained in
Section 374, there shall be no appeal by a convicted person in any of the
following cases, namely:-
(a) where a High Court passes only a sentence of imprisonment for a term not
exceeding six months or of fine not exceeding one thousand rupees, or of
both such imprisonment and fine;
(b) where a Court of Session or a Metropolitan Magistrate passes only a
sentence of imprisons for a term not exceeding three months or of not
exceeding two hundred rupees, or of both such imprisonment and fine;
(c) where a Magistrate of the first class passes only a sentence of fine not
exceeding one hundred rupees ;
or
(d) where, in a case tried summarily, a Magistrate empowered to act under
Section 260 passes only a sentence of fine not exceeding two hundred
rupees:-
Provided that an appeal may be brought against such sentence if any other
punishment is combined with it, but such sentence shall not be appealable
merely on the ground:--
(i) that the person convicted is ordered to furnish security to keep the
peace; or
(ii) that a direction for imprisonment in default payment of fine is
included in the sentence; or
(iii) that more than one sentence of fine is passed in the case, if the
total amount of fine imposed not exceed the amount hereinbefore specified in
respect of the case.
377. Appeal by the State Government against sentence:-(1) Save as
otherwise provided in section (2), the State Government may, in any case of
conviction on a trial held by any Court other than a High Court, direct the
Public Prosecutor to present an appeal to the High Court against the
sentence on the ground of its inadequacy.
(2) If such conviction is in a case in which the offence has been
investigated by the Delhi Special Police Establishment, constituted under
the Delhi Special Police Establishment Act, 1946 (25 of 1946), or by any
other agency empowered to make investigation into an offence under any
Central Act other than this Code, the Central Government may also direct the
Public Prosecutor to present an appeal to the High Court against the
sentence on the ground of its inadequacy.
(3) When an appeal has been filed against the sentence on the ground of its
inadequacy, the High Court shall not enhance the sentence except after
giving to the accused a reasonable opportunity of showing cause against such
enhancement and while showing cause; the accused may plead of his acquittal
or for the reduction of the sentence.
378. Appeal in case of acquittal :--(1) Save as otherwise provided in
sub-section (2) and subject to the provisions of sub-sections (3) and (5),
the State Government may, in any case, direct the Public Prosecutor to
present an appeal to the High Court from an original or appellate order of
acquittal passed by any Court other than a High Court, or an order of
acquittal passed by the Court of Session in revision.
(2) If such an order of acquittal is passed in any case in which the offence
has been investigated by the Delhi Special Police Establishment constituted
under the Delhi Special Police Establishment Act, 1946 (25 of 1946), or by
any other agency empowered to make investigation into an offence under any
Central Act other than this Code, the Central Government may also direct the
Public Prosecutor to present an appeal, subject to the provisions of
sub-section (3), to the high Court from the order of acquittal.
(3) No appeal under sub-section (1) or sub-section (2) shall be entertained
except with the leave of the High Court.
(4) If such an order of acquittal is passed in any case instituted upon
complaint and the High Court, on an application made to it by the
complainant in this behalf, grants special leave to appeal from the order of
acquittal, the complainant may present such an appeal to the High Court.
(5) No application under sub-section (4) for the grant of special leave to
appeal from an order of acquittal shall be entertained by the High Court
after the expiry of six months, where the complainant is a public servant,
and sixty days in every other case, computed from the date of that order of
acquittal.
(6) If, in any case, the application under sub-section (4) for the grant of
special leave to appeal from an order of acquittal is refused, no appeal
from that order of acquittal shall lie under sub-section (1) or under
sub-section (2).
379. Appeal against conviction by High Court in certain cases:--
Where the High Court has, on appeal, reversed an order of acquittal of an
accused person and convicted him and sentenced him to death or to
imprisonment for life or to imprisonment for a term of ten years or more, he
may appeal to the Supreme Court.
380. Special right of appeal in certain cases.- Notwithstanding
anything contained in this chapter, when more persons than one are convicted
in one trial, and an appealable judgement or order has been passed in
respect of any of such persons, all or any of the persons convicted at such
trial shall have a right of appeal.
381. Appeal to Court of Session how heard:- (1) Subject to the
provisions of sub-section (2), an appeal to the Court of Session or Sessions
Judge shall be heard by the Sessions Judge or by an Additional Sessions
Judge:
Provided that an appeal against a conviction on a trial held by a Magistrate
of the second class may be heard and disposed of by an Assistant Sessions
Judge or a Chief Judicial Magistrate.
(2) An Additional Sessions Judge, Assistant Sessions Judge or a Chief
Judicial Magistrate shall hear only such appeals as the Sessions Judge of
the division may, by general or special order, make over to him or as the
High Court may, by special order, direct him to hear.
382. Petition of appeal:- Every appeal shall be made in the form of a
petition in writing presented by the appellant or his pleader, and every
such petition shall (unless the Court to which it is presented otherwise
directs) be accompanied by a copy of the judgement or order appealed
against.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Andaman, Nicobar Island and Lakshadweep Island:- (I) Section 382 renumbered
as sub-section (1), the following proviso shall be added to sub-section (1)
so renumbered:-
"Provided that where it is not practicable to file the petition of appeal to
the proper Appellate Court, the petition of appeal may be presented to the
Administrator or to an Executive Magistrate not below the rank of a
sub-divisional Magistrate, who shall forward the same to the proper
Appellate Court; and, when any such appeal is presented to the Administrator
or to an Executive Magistrate, he shall record thereon the date of its
presentation and, if he is satisfied that, by reason of the weather,
transport or other difficulties, it is not possible for the appellant to
obtain, from the proper Appellate Court, orders for the suspension of the
sentence or for bail, he may, in respect of such appeal, or an appeal
forwarded to him under Section 383 exercise all or any of the powers of the
proper Appellate Court under sub- section (1) of Section 389 with regard to
suspension of sentence or release of a convicted person on bail:
Provided further that the order so made by the Administrator or the
Executive Magistrate shall have effect until it is reversed or modified by
the proper Appellate Court.
Explanation:-- For the purposes of the provisos to this Section and Section
383, "Administrator" in relation to a Union Territory, means the
Administrator appointed by the President under Article 239 of the
Constitution, for the Union Territory.
(i) After sub-section (1) so renumbered, the following sub-section (2) shall
be inserted,
namely,--
(2) For the purposes of computation of the period of limitation, and for all
other purposes, an appeal presented to an Administrator or an Executive
Magistrate under sub-section (1) or, as the case may be, under section 383,
shall be deemed to be an appeal presented to the proper Appellate Court".
Regulation 1 of 1974, w.e.f. 30-3-1974.
383. Procedure when appellant in jail:-- If the appellant is in jail,
he may present his petition of appeal and the copies accompanying the same
to the officer in charge of the jail, who shall thereupon forward such
petition and copies to the proper Appellate Court.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Andaman, Nicobar Islands and Lakshadweep Islands:-
Insert the following words at the end:--
"Or if, by reason of the weather, transport or other difficulties, it is not
possible to forward them to the proper Appellate Court, they shall be
forwarded to the Administrator or an Executive Magistrate, not below the
rank of a Sub-Divisional Magistrate, who shall, on receipt of such petition
of appeal and copies, record thereon the date of receipt thereof and
thereafter forward the same to the proper Appellate Court". Regulation 1 of
1974, w.e.f. 30-3-1974.
384. Summary dismissal of appeal:--(1) If upon examining the petition
of appeal and copy of the judgement received under Section 382 or Section
383, the Appellate Court considers that there is no sufficient ground for
interfering, it may dismiss the appeal summarily:-
Provided that-
(a) no appeal presented under Section 382 shall be dismissed unless the
appellant or his pleader has had a reasonable opportunity of being heard in
support of the same;
(b) no appeal presented under Section 383 shall be dismissed except after
giving the appellant a reasonable opportunity of being heard in support of
the same, unless the Appellate Court considers, that the appeal is frivolous
or that the production of the accused in custody before the Court would
involve such inconvenience as would be disproportionate in the circumstances
of the case;
(c) no appeal presented under Section 383 shall be dismissed summarily until
the period allowed for preferring such appeal has expired.
(2) Before dismissing an appeal under this Section, the Court may call for
the record of the case.
(3) Where the Appellate Court dismissing an appeal under this section is a
Court of Session or of the Chief Judicial Magistrate, it shall record its
reasons for doing so.
(4) Where an appeal presented under Section 383 has been dismissed summarily
under this section and the Appellate Court finds that another petition of
appeal duly presented under Section 382 on behalf of the same appellant has
not been considered by it, that Court may, notwithstanding anything
contained in Section 393, if satisfied that it is necessary in the interests
of Justice so to do, hear and dispose of such appeal in accordance with law.
385. Procedure for hearing appeals not dismissed summarily :-(1) If
the Appellate Court does not dismiss the appeal summarily, it shall cause
notice of the time and place at which such appeal will be heard to be
given:--
(i) to the appellant or his pleader;
(ii) to such officer as the State Government may appoint in this behalf;
(iii) if the appeal is from a judgement of conviction in a case instituted
upon complaint, to the complainant
(iv) if the appeal is under Section 377 or Section 378, to the accused,
and shall also furnish such officer, complainant and accused with a copy of
the grounds of appeal.
(2) The Appellate Court shall then send for the record of the case, if such
record is not already available in the Court, and hear the parties:
Provided that if the appeal is only as to the extent of the legality of the
sentence, the Court may dispose of the appeal without sending for the
record.
(3) Where the only ground for appeal from a conviction is the alleged
severity of the sentence, the appellant shall not, except with the leave of
the Court, urge or be heard in support of any other ground.
386. Powers of the Appellate Court:- After perusing, such record and
hearing the appellant or his pleader, if he appears, and the Public
Prosecutor, if he appears and in case of an appeal under Section 377 or
Section 378, the accused if he appears, the Appellate Court may, if it
considers that there is no sufficient ground for interfering, dismiss the
appeal, or may:--
(a) in an appeal from an order of acquittal, reverse such order and direct
that further inquiry be made, or that the accused be re-tried or committed
for trial, as the case may be, or find him guilty and pass sentence on him
according to law.
(b) in an appeal from a conviction:--
(i) reverse the finding and sentence and acquit or discharge the accused, or
order him to be re-tried by a Court of competent jurisdiction subordinate to
such Appellate Court or committed for trial, or
(ii) after the finding, maintaining the sentence, or
(iii) with or without altering the finding, alter the nature or the extent,
or the nature and extent, of the sentence, but not so as to enhance the
same--
(c) in an appeal for enhancement of sentence:--
(i) reverse the finding and sentence and acquit or discharge the accused or
order him to be re-tried by a Court competent to try the offence, or
(ii) after the finding maintaining the sentence, or
(iii) with or without altering the finding, alter the nature or the extent,
or, the nature and extent, of the sentence, so as to enhance or reduce the
same;
(d) in an appeal from any other order, alter or reverse such order;
(e) make any amendment or any consequential or incidental order that may be
just or proper:
Provided that the sentence shall not be enhanced unless the accused has had
an opportunity of showing cause against such enhancement:
Provided further that the Appellate Court shall not inflict greater
punishment for the offence which in its opinion the accused has committed,
than might have been inflicted for that offence by the Court passing the
order or sentence under appeal.
387. Judgements of Subordinate Appellate Court : - The rules
contained in Chapter XXVII as to the judgement of a Criminal Court of
original jurisdiction shall apply, so far as may be practicable, to the
judgement in appeal of a Court of Session or Chief Judicial Magistrate:
Provided that, unless the Appellate Court otherwise directs, the accused
shall not be brought up, or required to attend, to hear the judgement
delivered.
388. Order of High Court on appeal to be certified to lower Court:-(1)
Whenever a case is decided on appeal by the High Court under this Chapter,
it shall certify its judgement or order to the Court by which the finding,
sentence or order appealed against was recorded or passed and if such Court
is that of a Judicial Magistrate other than the Chief Judicial Magistrate,
the High Court's judgement or order shall be sent through the Chief Judicial
Magistrate, and if such Court is that of an Executive Magistrate, the High
Court judgement or order shall be sent through the District Magistrate.
(2) The Court to which the High Court certifies its judgement or order shall
thereupon make such orders as are comfortable to the judgement or order of
the High Court, and if necessary, the record shall be amended in accordance
therewith.
389. Suspension of sentence pending the appeal; release of appellant on
bail:- (1) Pending any appeal by a convicted person, the Appellate Court
may, for reasons to be recorded by it in writing, order that the execution
of the sentence or order appealed against be suspended and, also if he is in
confinement, that he be released on bail, or on his own bond.
(2) The power conferred by this section on a Appellate Court may be
exercised also by the High Court in the case of an appeal by a convicted
person to a Court subordinate thereto.
(3) Where the convicted person satisfies the Court by which he is convicted
that he intends to present an appeal, the Court shall.--
(i) where such person, being on bail, is sentenced to imprisonment for a
term not exceeding three years, or
(ii) where the offence of which such person has been convicted is a bailable
one, and he is on bail, order that the convicted person be released on bail,
unless there are special reasons for refusing bail, for such period as will
afford sufficient time to present the appeal and obtain the orders of the
Appellate Court under sub-section (1), and the sentence of imprisonment
shall, so long as he is so released on bail, be deemed to be suspended.
(4) When the appellant is ultimately sentenced to imprisonment for a term or
to imprisonment for life, the time during which he is so released shall be
excluded in computing the term for which he is so sentenced.
390. Arrest of accused in appeal from acquittal.- When an appeal is
presented under Section 378, the High Court may issue a warrant directing
that the accused be arrested and brought before it or any Subordinate Court,
and the Court before which he is brought may commit him to prison pending
the disposal of the appeal or admit him to bail.
391. Appellate Court may take further evidence or direct it to be taken:-
(1) In dealing with any appeal under this Chapter, the Appellate Court, if
it thinks additional evidence to be necessary, shall record its reasons and
may either take such evidence itself, or direct it to be taken by a
Magistrate, or, when the Appellate Court is a High Court, by a Court of
Session or a Magistrate.
(2) When the additional evidence is taken by the Court of Session or the
Magistrate, it or he shall certify such evidence to the Appellate Court, and
such Court shall thereupon proceed to dispose of the appeal.
(3) The accused or his pleader shall have the right to be present when the
additional evidence is taken.
(4) The taking of evidence under this section shall be subject to the
provisions of Chapter XXIII, as if it were an inquiry.
392. Procedure where Judges of Court of Appeal are equally divided:-
When an appeal under this chapter is heard by a High Court before a Bench of
Judges and they are divided in opinion, the appeal, with their opinions,
shall be laid before another Judge of that Court, and that Judge, after such
hearing as he thinks fit, shall deliver his opinion, and the judgement or
order shall follow that opinion:
Provided that if one of the Judges constituting the Bench, or, where the
appeal is laid before another Judge under this section, that Judge, so
requires, the appeal shall be re-heard and decided by a larger Bench of
Judges.
393. Finality of judgements and orders on appeal:- Judgements and
orders passed by an Appellate Court upon an appeal shall be final, except in
the cases provided for in Section 377, Section 378, sub-section (4) of
Section 384 or Chapter XXX:
Provided that notwithstanding the final disposal of an appeal against
conviction in any case, the Appellate Court may hear and dispose of, on the
merits..--
(a) an appeal against acquittal under Section 378, arising out of the same
case, or
(b) an appeal for the enhancement of sentence under Section 377, arising out
of the same case.
394. Abatement of appeals :-(1) Every appeal under Section 377 or
Section 378 shall finally abate on the death of the accused.
(2) Every other appeal under this chapter appeal from a sentence of fine
shall finally abate on the death of the appellant:
Provided that where the appeal is against a conviction and sentence of death
or of imprisonment, and the appellant dies during the pendency of the
appeal, any of his near relatives may, within thirty days of the death of
the appellant, apply to the Appellate Court for leave to continue the
appeal; and if leave is granted, the appeal shall not abate.
Explanation.- In this Section "near relative" means a parent, spouse, lineal
descendant, brother or sister
CHAPTER XXX
REFERENCE
AND REVISION
395. Reference to
High Court:--(1)
Where any Court is satisfied that a case pending before it involves a
question as to the validity of any Act, Ordinance or Regulation or of any
provision contained in an Act, Ordinance or Regulation, the determination of
which is necessary for the disposal of the case, and is of opinion that such
Act, Ordinance, Regulation or provision is invalid or inoperative but has
not been so declared by the High Court to which that Court is Subordinate or
by the Supreme Court, the Court shall state a case setting out its opinion
and the reasons therefor, and refer the same for the decision of the High
Court.
Explanation-- In this section, "Regulation" means any Regulation as defined
in the General Clauses Act, 1897 (10 of 1897), or in the General Clauses Act
of a State.
(2) A Court of Session or a Metropolitan Magistrate may, if it or he thinks
fit in any case pending before it or him to which the provisions of
sub-section (1) do not apply, refer for the decision of the High Court any
question of law arising in the hearing of such case.
(3) Any Court making a reference to the High Court under sub-section (1) or
sub-section (2) may, pending decision of the High Court thereon, either
commit the accused to jail or release him on bail to appear when called
upon.
396. Disposal of case according to decision of High Court:-(1) When a
question has been so referred, the High Court shall pass such order thereon
as it thinks fit, and shall cause a copy of such order to be sent to the
Court by which the reference was made, which shall dispose of the case
conformably to the said order.
(2) The High Court may direct by whom the costs of such reference shall be
paid.
397. Calling for records to exercise powers of revision:-(1) The High
Court or any Sessions Judge may call for and examine the record of any
proceeding before any inferior Criminal Court situate within its or his
local jurisdiction for the purpose of satisfying itself or himself; to the
correctness, legality or propriety of any finding, sentence or order,
recorded or passed, and as to the regularity of any proceedings of such
inferior Court, and may, when calling, for such record, direct that the
execution of any sentence or order be suspended, and if the accused is in
confinement that he be released on bail or on his own bond pending the
examination of the record.
Explanation:- All Magistrates, whether Executive or Judicial and whether
exercising original or appellate jurisdiction shall be deemed to be inferior
to the Sessions Judge for the purposes of this sub-section and of Section
398.
(2) The powers of revision conferred by sub-section (1) shall not be
exercised in relation to any interlocutor order passed in any appeal,
inquiry, trial or other proceeding.
(3) If an application under this section has been made by any person either
to the High Court or to the Sessions Judge, no further application by the
same person shall be entertained by the other of them.
398. Power to order inquiry:- On examining any record under Section 397
or otherwise, the High Court or the Sessions Judge may direct the Chief
Judicial Magistrate by himself or by any of the Magistrates subordinate to
him to make, and the Chief Judicial Magistrate may himself make, or direct
any subordinate Magistrate to make, further inquiry into any complaint which
has been dismissed under Section 203 or sub-section (4) of Section 204, or
into the case of any person accused of an offence who has been discharged:
Provided that no Court shall make any direction under this section for
inquiry into the case of any person who has been discharged unless such
person has had an opportunity of showing cause why such direction should not
be made.
399. Sessions Judge's powers of revision : (1) In the case of any
proceeding the record of which has been called for by himself, the Sessions
Judge may exercise all or any of the powers which may be exercised by the
High Court under sub-section (1) of Section 401.
(2) Where any proceeding by way of revision is commenced before a Sessions
Judge under sub-section (1), the provisions of sub-sections (2), (3), (4)
and (5) of Section 401 shall, so far as may be, apply to such proceeding and
references in the said sub-sections to the High Court shall be construed as
references to the Sessions Judge.
(3) Where any application for revision is made by or on behalf of any person
before the Sessions Judge, the decision of the Sessions Judge thereon in
relation to such person shall be final and no further proceeding by way of
revision at the instance of such person shall be entertained by the High
Court or any other Court.
400. Power of Additional Sessions Judge.—An Additional Sessions Judge
shall have and may exercise all the powers of a Sessions Judge under this
chapter in respect of any case which may be transferred to him by or under
any general or special order of the Sessions Judge.
401. High Court's powers of revision:--(1) In the case of any
proceeding the record of which has been called for by itself or which
otherwise comes to its knowledge the High Court may, in its discretion,
exercise any of the powers conferred on a Court of Appeal by Sections 386,
389, 390 and 391 or on a Court of Session by Section 307, and, when the
Judges composing the Court of Revision are equally divided in opinion, the
case shall be disposed of in the manner provided Section 392.
(2) No order under this section shall be made to the prejudice of the
accused or other person unless he has had an opportunity of being heard
either personally or by plead in his own defence.
(3) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to authorise a High Court to
convert a finding of acquittal into one conviction.
(4) Where under this Code an appeal lies and no appeal is brought, no
proceeding by way of revision shall be entertained at the instance of the
party who could have, appealed.
(5) Where under this Code an appeal lies but an application for revision has
been made to the High Court by any person and the High Court is satisfied
that such application was made under the erroneous belief that no appeal
lies thereto and that it is necessary in the interests of Justice so to do,
the High Court may treat the application for revision as a petition of
appeal and deal with the same accordingly.
402. Power of High Court to withdraw or transfer revision cases:--(1)
Whenever one or more persons convicted at the same trial makes or make
application to a High Court for revision and any other person convicted at
the same trial makes an application to the Sessions Judge for revision, the
High Court shall decide, having regard to the general convenience of the
parties and the importance of the questions involved, which of the two
Courts should finally dispose of the applications for revision and when the
High Court decides that all the applications for revision should be disposed
of by itself, the High Court shall direct that the applications for revision
pending before the Sessions Judge be transferred to itself and where the
High Court decides that it is not necessary for it to dispose of the
applications for revision, it shall direct that the applications for
revision made to it be transferred to the Sessions Judge.
(2) Whenever any application for revision is transferred to the High Court,
that Court shall deal with the same as if it were an application duly made
before itself.
(3) Whenever any application for revision is transferred to the Sessions
Judge, that Judge shall deal with the same as if it were an application duly
made before himself.
(4) Where an application for revision is transferred by the High Court to
the Sessions Judge, no further application for revision shall lie to the
High Court or to any other Court at the instance of the person or persons
whose application for revision have been disposed of by the Sessions Judge.
403. Option of Court to hear parties.- Save as otherwise expressly
provided by this Code, no party has any right to be heard either personally
or by pleader before any Court exercising its powers of revision, but the
Court may if it thinks fit, when exercising such powers, hear any party
either personally or by pleader.
404. Statement by Metropolitan Magistrate of grounds of his decision to
be considered by High Court: When the record of any trial held by a
Metropolitan Magistrate is called for by the High Court or Court of Session
under Section 397, the Magistrate may submit with the record a statement
setting forth the grounds of his decision or order and any facts which he
thinks material to the issue, and that Court shall consider such statement
before overruling or setting aside the said decision or order.
405. High Court's order to be certified to lower Court:-- When a case
is revised under this Chapter by the High Court or a Sessions Judge, it or
he shall, in the manner provided by Section 388, certify its decision or
order to the Court by which the finding, sentence or order revised was
recorded or passed, and the Court to which the decision or order is so
certified shall thereupon-make such orders as are conformable to the
decision so certified, and, if necessary, the record shall be amended in
accordance therewith.
CHAPTER
XXXI
TRANSFER OF
CRIMINAL CASES
406. Power of
Supreme Court to transfer cases and appeals:-(1)
Whenever it is made to appear to the Supreme Court that an order under this
section is expedient for the ends of justice, it may direct that any
particular case or appeal be transferred from one High Court to another High
Court or from a Criminal Court subordinate to one High Court to another
Criminal Court of equal or superior jurisdiction subordinate to another High
Court.
(2) The Supreme Court may act under this section only on the application of
the Attorney-General of India or of a party interested, and every such
application shall be made by motion, which shall, except when the applicant
is the Attorney-General of India or the Advocate-General of the State, be
supported by affidavit or affirmation.
(3) Where any application for the exercise of the powers conferred by this
section is dismissed, the Supreme Court may, if it is of opinion that the
application was frivolous or vexatious, order the applicant to pay by way of
compensation to any person who has opposed the application such sum not
exceeding one thousand rupees as it may consider appropriate in the
circumstances of the case.
407. Power of High Court to transfer cases and appeals:-(1) Whenever
it is made to appear to the High Court:--
(a) that a fair and impartial inquiry or trial cannot be had in any Criminal
Court subordinate thereto, or
(b) that some question of law of unusual difficulty is likely to arise, or
(c) that an order under this section is required by any provision of this
Code, or will tend to the general convenience of the parties or witnesses,
or is expedient for the ends of justice,
it may order --
(i) that any offence be inquired into or tried by any Court not qualified
under Sections 177 to 185 (both
inclusive), but in other respects competent to inquire into or try such
offence;
(ii) that any particular case or appeal, or class of cases or appeals, be
transferred from a Criminal Court
subordinate to its authority to any other such Criminal Court of equal or
superior jurisdiction;
(iii) that any particular case be committed for trial to a Court of Session;
or
(iv) that any particular case or appeal be transferred to and tried before
itself
(2) The High Court may act either on the report of the lower Court, or on
the application of a party interested, or on its own initiative:
Provided that no application shall lie to the High Court for transferring a
case from one Criminal Court to another Criminal Court in the same sessions
division, unless an application for such transfer has been made to the
Session Judge and rejected by him.
(3) Every application for an order under sub section (1) shall be made by
motion, which shall, excel when the applicant is the Advocate-General of the
State, be supported by affidavit or affirmation.
(4) When such application is made by an accused person, the High Court may
direct him to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for the payment of
any compensation which the High Court may award under sub-section (7)
(5) Every accused person making such application shall give to the Public
Prosecutor notice in writing of the application, together with a copy of the
grounds on which it is made, and no order shall be made on the merits of the
applications unless at least twenty-four hours have elapsed between the
giving of such notice and the hearing of the application.
(6) Where the application is for the transfer of a case or appeal from any
Subordinate Court, the High Court may if it is satisfied that it is
necessary so to do in the interest of Justice, order that, pending the
disposal of the application the proceedings in the Subordinate Court shall
be stayed, on such terms as the High Court may think fit to impose:
Provided that such stay shall not affect the Subordinate Court's power of
remand under Section 309.
(7) Where an application for an order under sub-section (1) is dismissed,
the High Court may, if it is of opinion that the application was frivolous
or vexatious, order the applicant to pay by way of compensation to any
person who has opposed the application such sum not exceeding one thousand
rupees as it may consider proper in the circumstances of the case.
(8) When the High Court orders under sub-section (1) that a case be
transferred from any Court for trial before itself, it shall observe in such
trial the same procedure which that Court would have observed if the case
had not been so transferred.
(9) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to affect any order of
Government under Section 197.
408. Power of Sessions Judge to transfer cases and appeals:-(1)
Whenever it is made to appear to a Sessions Judge that an order under this
sub-section is expedient for the ends of justice, he may order that any
particular case be transferred from one Criminal Court to another Criminal
Court in his Sessions division.
(2) The Sessions Judge may act either on the report of the lower Court, or
on the application of a party interested, or on his own initiative.
(3) The provisions of sub-sections (3), (4), (5), (6) (7) and (9) of Section
407 shall apply in relation to an application to the Session, Judge for an
order under sub-section (1) as they apply in relation to an application to
High Court for an order under sub-sec. (1) of Section 407 except that
sub-section (7) of that section shall so apply as if for the words, "one
thousand rupees" occurring therein the words "two hundred and fifty rupees"
were substituted.
409. Withdrawal of cases and appeals by Session Judge: -(1) A
Sessions Judge may withdraw any case or appeal from, or recall any case or
appeal which he has made over to, any Assistant Sessions Judge or Chief
Judicial Magistrate subordinate to him.
(2) At any time before the trial of the case or the hearing of the appeal
has commenced before the Additional Sessions Judge, a Sessions Judge may
recall any case appeal which he has made over to any Additional Session
Judge.
(3) Where a Sessions Judge withdraws or recalls case or appeal under
sub-section (1) or sub-section (2), he may either try the case in his own
Court or hear the appeal himself, or make it over in accordance with the
provision of this Code to another Court for trial or hearing, as the case
may be.
410. Withdrawal of cases by Judicial Magistrate:- (1) Any Chief
Judicial Magistrate may withdraw any case from, or recall any case which he
has made over to, any Magistrate subordinate to him, and may inquire into or
try such case himself, or refer it for inquiry or trial to any other such
Magistrate competent to inquire into or try the same.
(2) Any Judicial Magistrate may recall any case made over by him under
sub-section (2) of Section 192 to any other Magistrate and may inquire into
or try such case himself.
411. Making over or withdrawal of cases by Executive Magistrates.-
Any District Magistrate or Sub- Divisional Magistrate may ---
(a) make over, for disposal, any proceeding which has been started before
him, to any Magistrate subordinate to him;
(b) withdraw any case from, or recall any case which he has made over to,
any Magistrate subordinate to him and dispose of such proceeding himself, or
refer it for disposal to any other Magistrate.
412. Reasons to be recorded:- A Sessions Judge or Magistrate making
an order under Section 408, Section 409, Section 410 or Section 411 shall
record his reasons for making it.
CHAPTER
XXXII
EXECUTION,
SUSPENSION, REMISSION AND COMMUTATION OF SENTENCES
A - Death
Sentences
413. Execution of order passed under Section 368.-
When in a case submitted to the High Court for the confirmation of a
sentence of death, the Court of Session receives the order of confirmation
or other order of the High Court thereon, it shall cause such order to be
carried into effect by issuing a warrant or taking such other steps as may
be necessary.
414. Execution of sentence of death passed by High Court:- When a
sentence of death is passed by the High Court in appeal or in revision, the
Court of Session shall, or receiving the order of the High Court, cause the
sentence to be carried into effect by issuing a warrant.
415. Postponement of execution of sentence of death in case of appeal to
Supreme Court:- (1) Where a person is sentenced to death by the High
Court and an appeal from its judgement lies to the Supreme Court under
sub-clause (a) or sub-clause (b) of Clause (1) of Article 134 of the
Constitution, the High Court shall order the execution of the sentence to be
postponed until the period allowed for preferring such appeal has expired,
or if an appeal is preferred within that period, until such appeal is
disposed of.
(2) Where a sentence of death is passed or confirmed by the High Court, and
the person sentenced makes an application to the High Court for the grant of
a certificate under Article 132 or under sub-clause (c) of Clause (1) of
Article 134 of the Constitution, the High Court shall order the execution of
the sentence to be postponed until such application is disposed of by the
High Court or if a certificate is granted on such application, until the
period allowed for preferring an appeal to the Supreme Court on such
certificate has expired.
(3) Where a sentence of death is passed or confirmed by the High Court, and
the High Court is satisfied that the person sentenced intends to present a
petition to the Supreme Court for the grant of special leave to appeal under
Article 136 of the Constitution, the High Court shall order the execution of
the sentence to be postponed for such period as it considers sufficient to
enable him to present such petition.
416. Postponement of capital sentence on pregnant woman.- If a woman
sentenced to death is found to be pregnant, the High Court shall order the
execution of the sentence to be postponed, and may, if it thinks fit,
commute the sentence to imprisonment for life.
B - Imprisonment
417. Power to appoint place of imprisonment:- (1) Except when otherwise
provided by any law for the time being in force, the State Government may
direct in what place any person liable to be imprisoned or committed to
custody under this Code shall be confined.
(2) If any person liable to be imprisoned or committed to custody under this
Code is in confinement in a civil jail, the Court or Magistrate ordering the
imprisonment or committal may direct that the person be removed to a
criminal jail:
(3) When a person is removed to a criminal jail under sub-section (2) he
shall, on being released therefrom, be sent back to the civil jail, unless
either,--
(a) three years have elapsed since he was removed to the criminal jail, in
which case he shall be deemed to have been released from the civil jail
under Section 58 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (5 of 1908), or
Section 23 of the Provincial Insolvency Act, 1920 (5 of 1920), as the case
may be, or
(b) the Court which ordered his imprisonment in the civil jail has certified
to the officer in charge of the criminal jail that he is entitled to be
released under Section 58 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (5 of 1908),
or under Section 23 of the Provincial Insolvency Act, 1920 (5 of 1920), as
the case may be.
418. Execution of sentence of imprisonment:-(1) Where the accused is
sentenced to imprisonment for, life or to imprisonment for a term in cases
other than those provided for by Section 413, the Court passing the sentence
shall forthwith forward a warrant to the jail or other place in which he is,
or is to be, confined, and, unless the accused is already confined in such
jail or other place, shall forward him to such jail or other place, with the
warrant:
Provided that where the accused is sentenced to imprisonment till the rising
of the Court, it shall not be necessary to prepare or forward a warrant to a
jail, and the accused may be confined in such place as the Court may direct.
(2) Where the accused is not present in Court when he is sentenced to such
imprisonment as is mentioned in sub-section (1), the Court shall issue a
warrant for his arrest for the purpose of forwarding him to the jail or
other place in which he is to be confined; and in such case, the sentence
shall commence on the date of his arrest.
419. Direction of warrant for execution:- Every warrant for the
execution of a sentence of imprisonment shall be directed to the officer in
charge of the jail or other place in which the prisoner is, or is to be,
confined.
420. Warrant with whom to be lodged:- When the prisoner is to be
confined in jail, the warrant shall be lodged with the jailor.
C - Levy of fine
421. Warrant for levy of fine-.-(1) When an offender has been sentenced
to pay a fine, the Court passing the sentence may take action for the
recovery of the fine in either or both of the following ways, that is to
say, it may,-
(a) issue a warrant for the levy of the amount by attachment and sale of any
movable property belonging to the offender;
(b) issue a warrant to the Collector of the district, authorising him to
realise the amount as arrears of land revenue from the movable or immovable
property, or both, of the defaulter:
Provided that, if the sentence directs that in default of payment of the
fine, the offender shall be imprisoned, and if such offender has undergone
the whole of such imprisonment in default, no Court shall issue such warrant
unless, for special reasons to be recorded in writing, it considers it
necessary so to do, or unless, it has made an order for the payment of
expenses or compensation out of the fine under Section 357.
(2) The State Government may make rules regulating the manner in which
warrants under Clause (a) of sub-section (1) are to be executed, and for the
summary determination of any claims made by any person other than the
offender in respect of any property attached in execution of such warrant.
(3) Where the Court issues a warrant to the Collector under Clause (b) of
sub-section (1), the Collector shall realise the amount in accordance with
the law relating to recovery of arrears of land revenue, as if such warrant
were a certificate issued under such law:
Provided that no such warrant shall be executed by the arrest or detention
in prison of the offender.
422. Effect of such warrant:- A warrant issued under Clause (a) of
sub-section (1) of Section 421 by any Court may be executed within the local
jurisdiction of such Court, and it shall authorise the attachment and sale
of any such property outside such jurisdiction, when it is endorsed by the
District Magistrate within whose local jurisdiction such property is found.
423. Warrant for levy of fine issued by a Court in any territory to which
this Code does not extend:- Notwithstanding anything contained in this
Code or in any other law for the time being in force, when an offender has
been sentenced to pay a fine by a Criminal Court in any territory to which
this Code does not extend and the Court passing the sentence issued a
warrant to the Collector of a district in the territories to which this Code
extends, authorising him to realise the amount as if it were an arrears of
land revenue, such warrant shall be deemed to be a warrant issued under
Clause (b) of sub-section (1) of Section 421 by a Court in the territories
to which this Code extends, and the provisions of sub-section (3) of the
said section as to the execution of such warrant shall apply accordingly.
424. Suspension of execution of sentence of imprisonment: -(1) When
an offender has been sentenced to fine only and to imprisonment in default
of payment of the fine, and the fine is not paid forthwith, the Court may-
(a) order that the fine shall be payable either in full on or before a date
not more than thirty days from the date of the order, or in two or three
instalments, of which the first shall be payable on or before a date not
more than thirty days from the date of the order and the other or others at
an interval or at intervals, as the case may be, of not more than thirty
days.
(b) suspend the execution of the sentence of imprisonment and release the
offender, on the execution by the offender of a bond, with or without
sureties, as the Court thinks fit, conditioned for his appearance before the
Court on the date or dates on or before which payment of the fine or the
instalments thereof, as the case may be, is to be made, and if the amount of
the fine or of any instalment, as the case may be, is not realised on or
before the latest date on which it is payable under the order, the Court may
direct the sentence of imprisonment to be carried into execution at once.
(2) The provisions of sub-section (1) shall be applicable also in any case
in which an order for the payment of money has been made on non-recovery of
which imprisonment may be awarded and the money is not paid forthwith, and,
if the person against whom the order has been made, on being required to
enter into a bond such as is referred to in that sub-section, fails to do
so, the Court may at once pass sentence of imprisonment.
D – General provisions regarding execution
425. Who may issue warrant:- Every warrant for the execution of a
sentence may be issued either by the Judge or Magistrate who passed the
sentence, or by his successor-in-charge.
426. Sentence on escaped convict when to take effect:- (1) When a
sentence of death, imprisonment for life or fine is passed under this Code
on an escaped convict, such sentence shall, subject to the provisions
hereinbefore contained, take effect immediately.
(2) When a sentence of imprisonment for a term is passed under this Code on
an escaped convict-
(a) if such sentence is severer in kind than the sentence which such convict
was undergoing when he escaped, the new sentence shall take effect
immediately;
(b) if such sentence is not severer in kind than the sentence which such
convict was undergoing when he escaped, the new sentence shall take effect
after he has suffered imprisonment for a further period equal to that which,
at the time of his escape, remained unexpired of his former sentence.
(3) For the purposes of sub-section (2), a sentence of rigorous imprisonment
shall be deemed to be severer in kind than a sentence of simple
imprisonment.
427. Sentence on offender already sentenced for another offence:-(1)
When a person already undergoing a sentence on a subsequent conviction to
imprisonment or imprisonment for life, such imprisonment or imprisonment for
life shall commence at the expiration of the imprisonment to which he has
been previously sentenced, unless the Court directs that the subsequent
sentence shall run concurrently with such previous sentence:
Provided that where a person who has been sentenced to imprisonment by an
order under Section 122 in default of furnishing security is, whilst
undergoing such sentence, sentenced to imprisonment for an offence committed
prior to the making of such order, the latter sentence shall commence
immediately.
(2) When a person already undergoing a sentence of imprisonment for life is
sentenced on a subsequent conviction to imprisonment for a term or
imprisonment for life, subsequent sentence shall run concurrently with such
previous sentence.
STATE AMENDMENT
Tamilnadu :-- Insert the following sub-section after sub- section (I):--
"(IA) Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-section (1), when a person
already undergoing a sentence of imprisonment is sentenced on a subsequent
conviction to imprisonment under sub-section (2) of Section 380 of the
Indian Penal Code (Central Act XLV of 1860), for an offence of theft of any
idol or icon in any building used as a place of worship, such imprisonment
shall commence at the expiration of the imprisonment to which he has been
previously sentenced" - T.N. Act 28 of 1993.
428. Period of detention undergone by the accuser to be set off against
the sentence of imprisonment:- Where an accused person has, on
conviction, been sentenced to imprisonment for a term, not being
imprisonment in default of payment of fine, the period of detention, if any
undergone by him during the investigation, inquiry or trial of the same case
and before the date of such conviction, shall be set off against the term of
imprisonment imposed on him on such conviction, and the liability of such
person to undergo imprisonment on such conviction shall be restricted to the
remainder, if any, of the term of imprisonment imposed on him.
429. Saving.--- (1) Nothing in Section 426 or Section 427 shall be
held to excuse any person from any part of the punishment to which he is
liable upon his former or subsequent conviction.
(2) When an award of imprisonment in default of payment of a fine is annexed
to a substantive sentence of imprisonment and the person undergoing the
sentence is after its execution to undergo a further substantive sentence or
further substantive sentences of imprisonment, effect shall not be given to
the award of imprisonment in default of payment of the fine until the person
has undergone the further sentence or sentences.
430. Return of warrant on execution of sentence:- When a sentence has
been fully executed, the officer executing it shall return the warrant to
the Court from which it is issued, with an endorsement under his hand
certifying the manner in which the sentence has been executed.
431. Money ordered to be paid recoverable as a fine:--Any money
(other than a fine) payable by virtue of any order made under this Code, and
the method of recovery of which is not otherwise expressly provided for,
shall be recoverable as if it were a fine:
Provided that Section 421 shall, in its application to an order under
Section 359, by virtue of this section, be construed as if in the proviso to
sub-section (1) of Section 421, after the words and figures "under Section
357", the words and figures "or an order for payment of costs under Section
359" had been inserted.
E - Suspension, remission and commutation of sentences
432. Power to suspend or remit sentences:- (1) When any person has been
sentenced to punishment for an offence, the appropriate Government may, at
any time, without conditions or upon any conditions which the person
sentenced accepts, suspend the execution of his sentence or remit the whole
or any part of the punishment to which he has been sentenced.
(2) Whenever an application is made to the appropriate Government for the
suspension or remission of a sentence, the appropriate Government may
require the presiding Judge of the Court before or by which the conviction
was had or confirmed, to state his opinion as to whether the application
should be granted or refused, together with his reasons for such opinion and
also to forward with the statement of such opinion a certified copy of the
record of the trial or of such record thereof as exists.
(3) If any condition on which a sentence has been suspended or remitted is,
in the opinion of the appropriate Government, not fulfilled, the appropriate
Government may, cancel the suspension or remission, and thereupon the person
in whose favour the sentence has been suspended or remitted may, if at
large, be arrested by any police officer, without warrant and remanded to
undergo the unexpired portion of the sentence.
(4) The condition on which a sentence is suspended or remitted under this
section may be one to be fulfilled by the person in whose favour the
sentence is suspended or remitted, or one independent of his will.
(5) The appropriate Government may, by general rules or special orders, give
directions as to the suspension of sentences and the conditions on which
petitions should be presented and dealt with:
Provided that in the case of any sentence (other than a sentence of fine)
passed on a male person above the age of eighteen years, no such petition by
the person sentenced or by any other person on his behalf shall be
entertained, unless the person sentenced is in jail, and --
(a) where such petition is made by the person sentenced, it is presented
through the officer in charge of the jail; or
(b) where such petition is made by any other person, it contains a
declaration that the person sentenced is in jail.
(6) The provisions of the above sub-sections shall also apply to any order
passed by a Criminal Court under any section of this Code or of any other
law, which restricts the liberty of any person or imposes any liability upon
him or his property.
(7) In this section and in Section 433, the expression "appropriate
Government" means,--
(a) in cases where the sentence is for an offence against, or the order
referred to in sub-section (6) is passed under, any law relating to a matter
to which the executive power of the Union extends, the Central Government;
(b) in other cases, the Government of the State within which the offender is
sentenced or the said order is passed.
E - Suspension, remission and commutation of sentences
433. Power to commute sentence:- The appropriate Government may, without
the consent of the person sentenced, commute --
(a) a sentence of death, for any other punishment provided by the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860);
(b) a sentence of imprisonment for life, for imprisonment for a term not
exceeding fourteen years or for fine;
(c) a sentence of rigorous imprisonment, for simple imprisonment for any
term to which that person might have been sentenced, or for fine;
(d) a sentence of simple imprisonment, or fine.
433A. Restriction on powers of remission or commutation in certain cases:-
Notwithstanding anything contained in Section 432, where a sentence of
imprisonment for life is imposed on conviction of a person for an offence
for which death is one of the punishments provided by law, or where a
sentence of death imposed on a person has been commuted under Section 433
into one of imprisonment for life, such person shall not be released from
prison unless he had served at least fourteen years of imprisonment.
434. Concurrent power of Central Government in case of death sentences:--
The powers conferred by Sections 432 and 433 upon the State Government may,
in the case of sentences of death, also exercised by the Central Government.
435. State Government to act after consultation with Central Government
in certain cases:- (1) The powers conferred by Sections 432 and 433 upon
the State Government to remit or commute a sentence, in any case where the
sentence is for an offence --
(a) which was investigated by the Delhi Special Police Establishment
constituted under the Delhi Special Police Establishment Act, 1946, (25 of
1946), or by any other agency empowered to make investigation into an
offence under any Central Act other than this Code, or
(b) which involved the misappropriation or destruction of, or damage to, any
property belonging to the Central Government, or
(c) which was committed by a person in the service of the Central Government
while acting or purporting to act in the discharge of his official duty,
shall not be exercised by the State Government except after consultation
with the Central Government.
(2) No order of suspension, remission or commutation of sentences passed by
the State Government in relation to a person, who has been convicted of
offences, some of which relate to matters to which the executive power of
the Union extends, and who has been sentenced to separate terms of
imprisonment which are to run concurrently, shall have effect unless an
order for the suspension, remission or commutation, as the case may be, of
such sentences has also been made by the Central Government in relation to
the offences committed by such person with regard to matters to which the
executive power of the Union extends.
CHAPTER
XXXIII
PROVISIONS
AS TO BAIL AND BONDS
436. In what cases
bail to be taken:---(1)
When any person other than a person accused of a non-bailable offence is
arrested or detained without warrant by an officer in charge of a police
station, or appears or is brought before a Court, and is prepared at any
time while in the custody of such officer or at any stage of the proceeding
before such Court to give bail, such person shall be released on bail:
Provided that such officer or Court, if he or it thinks fit, may, instead of
taking bail from such person, discharge him on his executing a bond without
sureties for his appearance as hereinafter provided:-
Provided further that nothing in this section shall be deemed to affect the
provisions of sub-section (3) of Section 116 or Section 446A.
(2) Notwithstanding anything contained in sub-section (1), where a person
has failed to comply with the conditions of the bail bond as regards the
time and place of attendance, the Court may refuse to release him on bail,
when on a subsequent occasion in the same case he appears before the Court
or is brought in custody and any such refusal shall be without prejudice to
the powers of the Court to call upon any person bound by such bond to pay
the penalty thereof under Section 446.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Uttar Pradesh:-- In sub-section, in first proviso for the word "discharge"
the word "release" shall be substituted – I.P Act 1 of 1984 w.e.f. 1-5-1984.
437. When bail may be taken in case of non bailable offence:- (1)
When any person accused of, or suspected of, the commission of any
non-bailable offence is arrested or detained without warrant by an
officer-in-charge of a police station or appears or is brought before a
Court other than the High Court or Court of session, he may be released on
bail, but-
(i) such person shall not be so released if there appears reasonable grounds
for believing that he has been guilty of an offence punishable with death or
imprisonment for life;
(ii) such person shall not be so released if such offence is a cognizable
offence and he has been previously convicted of an offence punishable with
death, imprisonment for life or imprisonment for seven years or more, or he
had been previously convicted on two or more occasions of a non-bailable
and cognizable offence:
Provided that the Court may direct that a person referred to in clause (1)
of clause (ii) be released on bail if such person is under the age of
sixteen years or is a woman or is sick or infirm:
Provided further that the Court may also direct that a person referred to in
clause (ii) be released on bail if it is satisfied that it is just and
proper so to do for any other special reason:
Provided also that the mere fact that an accused person may be required for
being identified by witnesses during investigation shall not be sufficient
ground for refusing to grant bail if he is otherwise entitled to be released
on bail and gives an undertaking that he shall comply with such directions
as may be given by the Court.
(2) If it appears to such officer or Court at any stage of the
investigation, inquiry or trial, as the case may be, that there are no
reasonable grounds for believing that the accused has committed a
non-bailable offence, but there are sufficient grounds for further inquiry
into his guilt, the accused shall, subject to the provisions of Section 446A
and pending such inquiry, be released on bail, or, at the discretion of such
officer or Court, on the execution by him of a bond without sureties for his
appearance as hereinafter provided.
(3) When a person accused or suspected of the commission of an offence
punishable with imprisonment which may extend to seven years or more or of
an offence under Chapter VI, Chapter XVI or Chapter XVII of the Indian Penal
Code (45 of 1860) or abatement of, or conspiracy or attempt to commit, any
such offence, is released on bail under sub-section (1), the Court may
impose any condition which the Court considers necessary,-
(a) in order to ensure that such person shall attend in accordance with the
conditions of the bond executed under this Chapter, or
(b) in order to ensure that such person shall not commit an offence similar
to the offence of which he is accused or of the commission of which he is
suspected, or
(c) otherwise in the interests of Justice.
(4) An officer or a Court releasing any person on bail under sub-section (1)
or sub-section (2), shall record in writing his or its reasons or special
reasons, for so doing.
(5) Any Court which has released a person on bail under sub-section (1) or
sub-section (2), may, if it considers it necessary so to do, direct that
such person be arrested and commit him to custody.
(6) If, in any case triable by a Magistrate, the trial of a person accused
of any non-bailable offence is not concluded within a period of sixty days
from the first date fixed for taking evidence in the case, such person
shall, if he is in custody during the whole of the said period, be released
on bail to the satisfaction of the Magistrate, unless for reasons to be
recorded in writing, the Magistrate otherwise directs.
(7) If, at any time, after the conclusion of the trial of a person accused
of a non-bailable offence and before judgement is delivered, the Court is of
opinion that there are reasonable grounds for believing that the accused is
not guilty of any such offence, it shall release the accused, if he is in
custody, on the execution by him of a bond without sureties for his
appearance to hear judgement delivered.
CASE LAW
Guiding factors for granting or refusing bail. MR 1979 SC 1360 = M9 Cr LJ
1036 = i 984 (3) SCC 555 = 1984 Cr. LJ 1211.
STATE AMENDMENT
Punjab -In Sec. 437, after sub-sec. (7), the following sub-sec (8) shall be
added, namely --
"(8) Before releasing the accused on bail under sub-section (1) or
sub-section (2), the Court shall give the prosecution a reasonable
opportunity to show cause against such release." Punj: Act 22 of 1983,
w.e.f. 27-6-1983.
Union Territory of Chandigarh - Same as in Punjab.
438. Direction for grant of bail to person apprehending arrest:---(1)
When any person has reason to believe that he may be arrested on an
accusation of having committed a non-bailable offence, he may apply to the
High Court or the Court of Sessions for a direction under this section, and
that Court may, if it thinks fit, direct that in the event of such arrest,
he shall be released on bail.
(2) When the High Court or the Court of Sessions makes a direction under
sub-section (1), it may include such conditions in such direction in the
light of the facts of the particular case, as it may think fit, including-
(i) a condition that the person shall make himself available for
interrogation by a police officer as and when required;
(ii) a condition that the person shall not, directly or indirectly, make any
inducement, threat or promise to any person acquainted with the facts of the
case so as to dissuade him from disclosing such facts to the Court or to any
police officer;
(iii) a condition that the person shall not leave India without the previous
permission of the Court;
(iv) such other condition as may be imposed under sub-section (3) of section
437, as if the bail were granted under that section.
(2) If such person is thereafter arrested without warrant by an officer in
charge of a police station on such accusation, and is prepared either at the
time of arrest or at any time while in the custody of such officer to give
bail, he shall be released on bail, and if a Magistrate taking cognizance of
such offence decides that a warrant should be issued in the first instance
against that person, he shall issue a bailable warrant in confirmity with
the direction of the Court under sub-section (1).
STATE AMENDMENTS
Maharashtra:- Substitute the following section for section 438:-
"438 Direction for grant of bail to person apprehending arrest:-- (1) When
any person has reason to believe that he may be arrested on an accusation of
having committed a non-bailable offence, he may apply to the High Court or
the Court of sessions for a direction under this section that in the event
of such arrest, he shall be released on bail, and that Court may, after
taking into consideration, inter alia, the following factors:-
(i) the nature and gravity or seriousness of the accusation as apprehended
by the applicant;
(ii) the antecedents of the applicant including the fact as to whether he
has, on conviction by a Court, previously undergone imprisonment for a term
in respect of any cognizable offence;
(iii) the likely object of the accusation to humiliate or malign the
reputation of the of the applicant by having him so arrested, and
(iv) the possibility of the applicant, if granted anticipatory bail, fleeing
from justice; either reject the application forthwith or issue an interim
order for the grant of anticipatory bail:
Provided that, where the High Court or as the case may be, the Court of
Sessions, has not passed any interim order under this sub-section or has
rejected the application for grant of anticipatory bail, it shall be open to
an officer in charge of a police station to arrest, without warrant the
applicant on the basis of the accusation apprehended in such application.
(2) Where the High Court or, as the case may be, the Court of Session,
considers it expedient to issue an interim order to grant anticipatory bail
under sub-section (1) the Court shall indicate therein the date, on which
the application for grant of, anticipatory bail shall be finally heard for
passing an order thereon, as the Court may deem fit and if the Court passes
any order granting anticipatory bail, such order shall include inter alia
the following conditions, namely:-
(i) that the applicant shall make himself available for interrogation by a
police officer as and when required;
(ii) that the applicant shall not, directly or indirectly, make any
inducement, threat or promise to any person acquainted with the facts of the
accusation against him so as to dissuade him from disclosing such facts
to the Court or to any police officer;
(iii) that the applicant shall not leave India without the previous
permission of the Court; and
(iv) such other condition as may be imposed under sub- section (3) of
Section 437 as if the bail was granted under that section.
(3) Where the Court grants an interim order under sub-section (1), it shall
forthwith cause a notice, being not less than seven days' notice, together
with a copy of such order to be served on the Public Prosecutor and the
Commissioner of Police, or as the case may be, the concerned Superintendent
of Police, with a view to give the Public Prosecutor a reasonable
opportunity of being heard when the application shall be finally heard by
the Court.
(4) The presence of the applicant seeking anticipatory bail shall be
obligatory at the time of final hearing of the application and passing of
final order by the Court if on an application made to it by the Public
Prosecutor, the Court considers such presence necessary in the interest of
Justice.
(5) On the date indicated in the interim order under sub-section (2), the
Court shall hear the Public Prosecutor and the applicant and after due
consideration of their contentions, it may either confirm, modify or cancel
the interim order made under sub-section (1)" Maharashtra Act XXIV of 1993.
Orissa the following proviso after sub-section (I):-
"Provided that where the apprehended accusation relates to an offence
punishable with death imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a term of
not less than seven years, no final order shall be made on such application
without giving the State notice to present its case". Orissa Act 11 of 1988,
w.e.f 22-7-1988.
Uttar Pradesh :- Section 438 shall be omitted. - U.P. Act 16 of 1976, w.e.f.
1-5-1976.
West Bengal :- Substitute the following, for sub-section. (I):-
"(1) (a) When any person has reason to believe that he may be arrested on an
accusation of having committed a non-bailable offence, he may apply to the
High Court or the Court of Sessions for a direction under this section that
in the event of such arrest, he shall be released on bail:
Provided that the mere fact that a person has applied to the High Court or
the Court of sessions for a direction under this section shall not, in the
absence of any order by that Court, be a bar to the apprehension of such
person, or the detention of such person in custody, by an officer in charge
of a police station.
(b) The High Court or the Court of Sessions, as the case may be, shall
dispose of an application for a direction under this sub-section within
thirty days of the date of such application:
Provided that where the apprehended accusation relates to an offence
punishable with death, imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a term of
not less than seven years, no final order shall be made on such application
without giving the State not less than seven days' notice to present its
case.
(c) If any person is arrested and detained in custody by an officer in
charge of a police station before the disposal of the application of such
person for a direction under " sub-section, the release of such person on
bail by a Court having jurisdiction pending such be subject to the provision
of section 437.
(IA) The provisions of sub-section (1) shall have effect notwithstanding
anything to the contrary contained elsewhere in this Act or in any
judgement, decree or any Court, Tribunal or other Authority." W.B. Act 25 of
1990.
439. Special powers of High Court or Court of Sessions regarding bail:
(1) A High Court or Court of Sessions may direct,-
(a) that any person accused of an offence and in custody be released on
bail, and if the offence is of the nature specified in sub-section (3) of
Section 437, may impose any condition which it considers necessary for the
purposes mentioned in that sub-section;
(b) that any condition imposed by a Magistrate when releasing any person on
bail be set aside or modified:
Provided that the High Court or the Court of Sessions shall, before granting
bail to a person who is accused of an offence which is triable exclusively
by the Court of Sessions or which, though not so triable, is punishable with
imprisonment for life, give notice of the application for bail to the Public
Prosecutor unless it is, for reasons to be recorded in writing, of opinion
that it is not practicable to give such notice.
(2) A High Court or Court of Sessions may direct that any person who has
been released on bail under this chapter be arrested and commit him to
custody.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Punjab:- After sec. 439 the following shall be inserted, namely,-
"439 A. Notwithstanding anything contained in this Code, no person-
(a) who, being accused or suspected of committing an offence under any of
the following sections namely – Sections 120-B, 121, 121-A, 122, 123, 134-A,
153-A, 302, 307, 326, 333, 363, 364, 365, 367, 368, 392, 394, 395, 396, 412,
431, 436, 449 and 450 of the Indian Penal Code, 1860, Sections 3,4,5 and 6
of the Explosive Substances Act, 1908, and Sections 25,26,27,28,29,30 and 31
of the Arms Act, 1959, is arrested or appears or is brought before a Court;
OR
(b) who, having any reason to believe that he may be arrested on accusation
of committing an offence as specified in Clause (a), has applied to the High
Court or the Court of Session for a direction for his release on bail in the
event of his arrest, shall be released on bail or, as the case may be,
directed to be released on bail, except on one or more of the following
grounds, namely:-
(i) that the Court including the High Court or the Court of Session for
reasons to be recorded in writing is satisfied that there are reasonable
grounds for believing that such person is not guilty of any offence
specified in Clause (a);
(ii) that such person is under the age of sixteen years or a woman or a sick
or an infirm person;
(iii) that the Court including the High Court or the Court of Session for
reasons to be recorded in writing is satisfied that there are exceptional
and sufficient grounds to release or direct the release of the accused on
bail". Punjab Act, 22 of 1983, w.e.f 27-6-1993.
Union Territory of Chandigarh .- Same as in Punjab.
Tripura :-- Insert Section 439A, after Section 439.
"439A. Power to grant bail :- Notwithstanding anything contained in
this Code, no person-
(a) who being accused of or suspected of committing an offence under
Sections 120B, 121, 121A, 122, 123, l24A, 153A, 302, 303, 304, 307, 326,
333, 364, 365, 366, 366A, 366B, 367, 368, 376, 386, 387, 392, 394, 395, 396,
397, 399, 412, 436, 449 and 450 of the Indian Penal Code 1860 (45 of 1860)
or Sections 25, 26, 27, and 28 of the Arms Act, 1959 (54 of 1959) or
Sections 3, 4, 5 and 6 of the Explosives Substances Act, 1908 (VI of 1908),
is arrested or appears or is brought before a Court;
OR
(b) who having any reason to believe that he may be arrested on an
accusation of committing an offence as specified in clause (a) has applied
to the High Court or Court of Sessions for a direction for his release on
bail in the event of his arrest,shall be released on bail or, as the case
may be, directed to be released on bait except on one or more of the
following grounds namely-
(i) that the Court including the High Court or the Court of Sessions, for
reasons to be recorded in writing, is satisfied that there are reasonable
grounds for believing that such person is not guilty of any offence
specified in clause (a);
(ii) that such person is under the age of sixteen years or any woman or any
sick or infirm person;
(iii) that the Court including the High Court or the Court of Session, for
reasons to be recorded in writing, is satisfied that there are exceptional
and sufficient grounds to release or direct the release of the accused on
bail." Punjab Act 22 of 1983, w.e.f 27-6-1983.
Union Territory of Chandigarh:- Same as in Punjab.
Tripura: Insert Section 439A, after Section 439.
"439A. Power to grant bail:- Notwithstanding anything contained in
this Code, no person-
(a) who, being accused of or suspended of committing an officer under
sections 120B, 121, 121A, 123, 124A, 153A, 302, 303, 304, 307, 326, 333,
364, 365, 366, 366A, 366B, 367, 368, 376, 386, 392, 394, 395, 396, 397, 399,
412, 436, 449 and 450 of the Indian Penal Code 1860 (45 of 1860) or sections
25,26,27 and 28 of the Arms Act, 1959 (54 of 1959) or sections 3,4,5 and 6
of the Explosives Substances Act, 1908 (VI of 1908), is arrested or appears
or is brought before a Court;
OR
(b) who, having any reason to believe that he may be arrested on an
accusation of committing an offence as specified in clause (a) has applied
to the High Court or Court of Sessions for a direction for his release on
bail in the event of his arrest,shall be released on bail or, as the case
may be, directed to be released on bail, except on one or more of the
following grounds namely-
(i) that the Court including the High Court or the Court of Sessions, for
reasons to be recorded in writing, is satisfied that there are reasonable
grounds for believing that such person is not guilty of any offence
specified in clause (a);
(ii) that such person is under the age of sixteen years or any woman or any
sick or infirm person;
(iii) that the Court including the High Court or the Court of Session, for
reasons to be recorded in writing, is satisfied that there are exceptional
and sufficient grounds to release or direct the release of the accused on
bail." Tripura Act 6 of 1992, w.e.f. 29-7-1992.
440. Amount of bond and reduction thereof: - (1) The amount of every
bond executed under this chapter shall be fixed with due regard to the
circumstances of the case, and shall not be excessive.
(2) The High Court or the Court of Sessions may direct that the bail
required by a police officer or Magistrate be reduced.
441. Bond of accused and sureties:-(1) Before any person is released
on bail or released on his own bond, a bond for such sum of money as the
police officer or Court, as the case may be, thinks sufficient shall be
executed by such person, and, when he is released on bail, by one or more
sufficient sureties conditioned that such person shall attend at the time
and place mentioned in the bond, and shall continue so to attend until
otherwise directed by the police officer or Court, as the case may be.
(2) Where any condition is imposed for the release of any person on bail,
the bond shall also contain that condition.
(3) If the case so requires, the bond shall also bind the person released on
bail to appear when called upon at the High Court, Court of Sessions or
other Court to answer the charge.
(4) For the purpose of determining whether the sureties are fit or
sufficient, the Court may accept affidavits in proof of the facts contained
therein relating to the sufficiency or fitness of the sureties, or, if it
considers necessary, may either hold an enquiry itself or cause an inquiry
to be made by a Magistrate subordinate to the Court, as to such sufficiency
or fitness.
442. Discharge from custody: (1) As soon as the bond has been executed, the
person for whose appearance it has been executed shall be released; and when
he is in jail, the court admitting him to bail shall issue an order of
release to the officer in charge of the jail, and such officer on receipt of
the orders shall release him.
(2) Nothing in this section, Section 436 or Section 437, shall be deemed to
require the release of any person liable to be detained for some matter
other than that in respect of which the bond was executed.
443. Power to order sufficient bail when that first taken is insufficient
:- If, through mistake, fraud or otherwise, insufficient sureties have been
accepted, or if they afterwards become insufficient the Court may issue a
warrant of arrest directing that the person released on bail be brought
before it and may order him to find sufficient sureties, and, on his failing
so to do, may commit him to jail.
444. Discharge of sureties:-(1) All or any sureties for the
attendance and appearance of a person released on bail may at any time apply
to a Magistrate to discharge the bond, either wholly or so far as relates to
the applicants.
(2) On such application being made the Magistrate shall issue his warrant of
arrest directing that the person so released be brought before him.
(3) On the appearance of such person pursuant to the warrant, or on his
voluntary surrender, the Magistrate shall direct the bond to be discharged
either wholly or so far as relates to the applicants, and shall call upon
such person to find other sufficient sureties, and, if he fails to do so,
may commit him to jail.
445. Deposit instead of recognisance:- When any person is required by
any Court or officer to execute a bond with or without sureties, such Court
or officer may, except in the case of a bond for good behaviour, permit him
to deposit a sum of money or Government promissory note to such amount as
the Court or officer may fix, in lieu of executing such bond.
446. Procedure when bond has been forfeited:-(1) Where a bond under
this Code is for appearance, or for production of property, before a Court
and it is proved to the satisfaction of that Court, or of any Court to which
the case has subsequently been transferred, that the bond has been
forfeited,or where, in respect of any other bond under this Code, it is
proved to the satisfaction of the Court by which the bond was taken or of
any Court to which the case has subsequently been transferred, or of the
Court of any Magistrate of the first class, that the bond has been
forfeited,the Court shall record the grounds of such proof, and may call
upon any person bound by such bond to pay the penalty thereof, or to show
cause why it should not be paid.
Explanation:- A condition in a bond for appearance, or for production of
property, before a Court shall be construed as including a condition for
appearance, or as the case may be, for production of property, before any
Court to which the case may subsequently be transferred.
(2) If sufficient cause is not shown and the penalty is not paid, the Court
may proceed to recover the same as if such penalty were a fine imposed by it
under this Code:
Provided that where such penalty is not paid and cannot be recovered in the
manner aforesaid, the person so bound as Surety shall be liable, by order of
the Court ordering the recovery of the penalty, to imprisonment in civil
jail for a term which may extend to six months.
(3) The Court may, as its discretion, remit any portion of the penalty
mentioned and enforce payment in part only.
(4) Where a surety to a bond dies before the bond is forfeited, his estate
shall be discharged from all liability in respect of the bond.
(5) Where any person who has furnished security under section 106 or section
117 or section 360 is convicted of an offence the commission of which
constitutes a breach of the conditions of his bond, or of a bond executed in
lieu of his bond under Section 448, a certified copy of the judgement of the
Court by which he was convicted of such offence may be used as evidence in
proceedings under this section against his surety or sureties, and, if such
certified copy is so used, the Court shall presume that such offence was
committed by him unless the contrary is proved.
446A. Cancellation of bond and bail bond: Without prejudice to the
provisions of Section 446, where a bond under this Code is for appearance of
a person in a case and it is forfeited for breach of a condition,-
(a) the bond executed by such person as well as the bond, if any, executed
by one or more of his sureties in that case shall stand cancelled; and (b)
thereafter no such person shall be released only on his own bond in that
case, if the Police Officer or the Court, as the case may be, for appearance
before whom the bond was executed, is, satisfied that there was no
sufficient cause for the failure of the person bound by the bond to comply
with its condition:
Provided that subject to any other provisions of this code he may be
released in that case upon the execution of a fresh personal bond for such
sum of money and bond by one or more of such sureties as the Police Officer
or the Court, as the case may be, thinks sufficient.
447. Procedure in case of insolvency of death of surety or when a bond is
forfeited:- When any surety to a bond under this Code becomes insolvent
or dies, or when any bond is forfeited under the provisions of Section 446,
the Court by whose order such bond was taken, or Magistrate of the first
class, may order the person from whom such security was demanded to furnish
fresh securities in accordance with the directions of the original order,
and, if such security is not furnished, such Court or Magistrate may proceed
as if there had been a default in complying with such original Order.
448. Bond required from minor:- When the person required by any
Court, or officer to execute a bond is a minor, such Court or officer may
accept, in lieu thereof, bond executed by a surety or sureties only.
449. Appeal from orders under Section 446:- All orders passed under
Section 446 shall be appealable-
(i) in the case of an order made by a Magistrate, to the Sessions-Judge;
(ii) in the case of an order made by a Court of Sessions, to the Court to
which an appeal lies from an order made by such Court.
450. Power to direct levy of amount due on certain recognizance:- The
High Court or Court of Sessions may direct any Magistrate to levy the amount
due on a bond for appearance or attendance at such High Court or Court of
Sessions.
CHAPTER
XXXIV
DISPOSAL OF
PROPERTY
451. Order for
custody and disposal of property pending trial in certain cases:-
When any property is produced before any Criminal Court during any inquiry
or trial, the Court may make such order as it thinks fit for the proper
custody of such property pending the conclusion of the inquiry or trial,
and, if the property is subject to speedy and natural decay, or if it is
otherwise expedient so to do, the Court may, after recording such evidence
as it thinks necessary, order it to be sold or otherwise disposed of.
Explanation:- For the purposes of this section, "property" includes:-
(a) property of any kind or document which is produced before the Court or
which is in its custody,
(b) any property regarding which an offence appears to have been committed
or which appears to have been used for the commission of any offence.
452. Order for disposal of property at conclusion of trial:- (1) When
an inquiry or trial in any Criminal Court is concluded, the Court may make
such order as it thinks fit for the disposal, by destruction, confiscation,
or delivery to any person claiming to be entitled to possession thereof or
otherwise, of any property or document produced before it or in its custody,
or regarding which any offence appears to have been committed, or which has
been used for the commission of any offence.
(2) An order may be made under sub-section (1) for the delivery of any
property to any person claiming to be entitled to the possession thereof,
without any condition or on condition that he executes a bond, with or
without securities, to the satisfaction of the Court, engaging to restore
such property to the Court if the order made under sub-section (1) is
modified or set aside on appeal or revision.
(3) A Court of Session may, instead of itself making an order under
sub-section (1), direct the property to be delivered to the Chief Judicial
Magistrate, who shall thereupon deal with it in the manner provided in
section 457, 458 and 459.
(4) Except where the property is livestock or is subject to speedy and
natural decay, or where a bond has been executed in pursuance of sub-sec.
(2), an order made under sub-sec. (1) shall not be carried out for two
months, or when an appeal is presented, until such appeal has been disposed
of.
(5) In this section, the term "property" includes, in the case of property
regarding which an offence appears to have been committed, not only such
property as has been originally in the possession or under the control of
any party, but also any property into or for which the same may have, been
converted or exchanged, and anything acquired by such conversion or
exchange, whether immediately or otherwise.
453. Payment to innocent purchaser of money found on accused :- When
any person is convicted of any offence which includes, or amounts to, theft
or receiving stolen property, and it is proved that any other person bought
the stolen property from him without knowing, or having reason to believe,
that the same was stolen, and that any money has on his arrest been taken
out of the possession of the convicted person, the Court may, on the
application of such purchase and on the restitution of the stolen property
to the person entitled to the possession thereof, order that out of such
money a sum not exceeding the price paid by such purchase be delivered to
him.
454. Appeal against orders under Section 452 or Section 453:--(1) Any
person aggrieved by an order made by a Court under Section 452 or Section
453, may appeal against it to the Court to which appeals ordinarily lie from
convictions by the former Court.
(2) On such appeal, the Appellate Court may direct the order to be stayed
pending disposal of the appeal, or may modify, alter or annul the order and
make any further orders that may be just.
(3) The powers referred to in sub-section (2) may also be exercised by a
Court of appeal confirmation or revision while dealing with the case in
which the order referred to in sub-section (1) was made.
455. Destruction of libellous and other matter:- (1) On a conviction
under Section 292, Section 293, Section 501 or Section 502 of the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860), the Court may order the destruction of all the
copies of the thing in respect of which the conviction was had, and which
are in the custody of the Court or remain in the possession or power of the
person convicted.
(2) The Court may, in like manner, on a conviction under Section 272,
Section 273, Section 274 or Section 275 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860), order the food, drink, drug or medical preparation in respect of
which the conviction was had, to be destroyed.
456. Power to restore possession of immovable property:-(1) When a
person is convicted of an offence Attended by criminal force or show of
force or by criminal intimidation, and it appears to the Court that, by such
force or show of force or intimidation, any person has been dispossessed of
any immovable property, the Court may, if it thinks fit, order that
possession of the same be restored to that person after evicting by force,
if necessary, any other person who may be in possession of the property:
Provided that no such order shall be made by the Court more than one month
after the date of the conviction.
(2) Where the Court trying the offence has not made an order under
sub-section (1), the Court of appeal, confirmation or revision may, if it
thinks fit, make such order while disposing of the appeal, reference or
revision, as the case may be.
(3) Where an order has been made under sub- section (1), the provisions of
Section 454 shall apply in relation thereto as they apply in relation to an
order under Section 453.
(4) No order made in this section shall prejudice any right or interest to
or in such immovable property which any person may be able to establish in a
civil suit.
457. Procedure by police upon Seizure of property:- (1) Whenever the
seizure of property by any police officer is reported to a Magistrate under
the provisions of this Code, and such property is not produced before a
Criminal Court during an inquiry or trial, the Magistrate may make such
order as he thinks fit respecting the disposal of such property or the
delivery of such property to the person entitled to the possession thereof,
or if such person cannot be ascertained respecting the custody and
production of such property.
(2) If the person so entitled is known, the Magistrate may order the
property to be delivered to him on such conditions (if any) as the
Magistrate thinks fit and if such person is unknown, the Magistrate may
detain it and shall in such case, issue a proclamation specifying the
article of which such property consists, and requiring any person who may
have a claim thereto, to appear before him and establish his claim within
six months from the date of such proclamation.
458. Procedure where no claimant appears within six months.- (1) If
no person within such period establish his claim to such property, and if
the person in whose possession such property was found is unable to show
that it was legally acquired by him, the Magistrate may, by order direct
that such property shall be at the disposal of the State Government, and may
be sold by that Government and the proceeds of such sale shall be dealt with
in such manner as may be prescribed.
(2) An appeal shall lie against any such order to the Court to which appeals
ordinarily lie from convictions by the Magistrate.
459. Power to sell perishable property.- If the person entitled to
the possession of such property is unknown or absent and the property is
subject to speedy and natural decay, or if the Magistrate to whom its
seizure is reported is of opinion that its sale would be for the benefit of
the owner, or that the value of such property is less than ten rupees, the
Magistrate may at any time direct it to be sold, and the provisions of
Sections 457 and 458 shall, as nearly as may be practicable, apply to the
net proceeds of
CHAPTER
XXXV
IRREGULAR
PROCEEDINGS
460.
Irregularities which do not vitiate proceedings.-
If any Magistrate not empowered by law to do any of the following things,
namely:-
(a) to issue a search-warrant under Section 94;
(b) to order, under Section 155, the police to investigate an offence;
(c) to hold an inquest under Section 176;
(d) to issue process, under Section 187, for the apprehension of a person
within his local jurisdiction who has committed an offence outside the
limits of such jurisdiction;
(e) to take cognizance of an offence under clause (a) or clause (b) of
sub-section (1) of Section 190;
(f) to make over a case under sub-section (2) of Section 192;
(g) to tender a pardon under Section 306;
(h) to recall a case and try it himself under Section 410; or
(i) to sell property under Section 458 or Section 459, erroneously in good
faith does that thing, his proceedings shall not be set aside merely on the
ground of his not being so empowered.
461. Irregularities which vitiate proceedings:- If any Magistrate,
not being empowered by law in this behalf, does any of the following things,
namely:-
(a) attaches and sells property under Section 83,
(b) issues a search-warrant for a document, parcel or other things in the
custody of a postal or telegraph authority;
(c) demands security to keep the peace.,
(d) demands security for good behaviour;
(e) discharges a person lawfully bound to be of good behaviour;
(f) cancels a bond to keep the peace;
(g) makes an order for maintenance;
(h) makes an order under Section 133 as to a local nuisance;
(i) prohibits, under Section 143, the repetition continuance of a public
nuisance;
(j) makes an order under Part C or Part D of Chapter X;
(k) takes cognizance of an offence under Clause (c) of sub-section (1) of
Section 190;
(l) tries an offender;
(m) tries an offender summarily;
(n) passes a sentence, under Section 325, on proceedings recorded by another
Magistrate;
(o) decides an appeal;
(p) calls under Section 397, for proceedings; or
(q) revises, an order passed under Section 446, his proceedings shall be
void.
462. Proceedings in wrong place:- No finding sentence or order of any
Criminal Court shall be set aside merely on the ground that the inquiry,
trial or other proceeding in the course of which it was arrived at or
passed, took place in a wrong sessions division, district, sub-division or
other local area, unless it appears that such error has in fact occasioned a
failure of justice.
463. Non-compliance with provisions of Section 164 or Section 281:--(1)
If any Court, before which a confession or other statement of an accused
person recorded, or purporting to be recorded under Section 164 or Section
281, is tendered, or has been received, in evidence, finds that any of the
provisions of either of such sections have not been complied with by the
Magistrate recording the statement, it may, notwithstanding anything
contained in Section 91 of the Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872), take
evidence in regard to such non-compliance, and may, if satisfied that such
non-compliance has not injured the accused in his defence on the merits and
that he duly made the statement recorded, admit such statement.
(2) The provisions of this section apply to Courts of appeal, reference and
revision.
464. Effect of omission to frame, or absence of, or error in, charge.--(1)
No finding sentence or order by a Court of competent jurisdiction shall be
deemed invalid merely on the ground that no charge was framed or on the
ground of any error, omission or irregularity in the charge including any
misjoinder of charges, unless, in the opinion of the Court of appeal,
confirmation or revision, a failure of Justice has in fact been occasioned
thereby.
(2) If the Court of appeal, confirmation or revision, is of opinion that a
failure of justice has in fact been occasioned, it may --
(a) in the case of an omission to frame a charge, order that a charge be
framed, and that the trial be recommended from the point immediately after
the framing of the charge;
(b) in the case of an error, omission or irregularity in the charge, direct
a new trial to be had upon a charge framed in whatever manner it thinks fit:
Provided that if the Court is of opinion that the facts of the case are such
that no valid charge could be preferred against the accused in respect of
the facts proved, it shall quash the conviction.
465. Finding or sentence when reversible by reason of error, omission or
irregularity:-(1) Subject to the provisions hereinbefore contained, no
finding, sentence or order passed by a Court of competent Jurisdiction shall
be reversed or altered by a Court of appeal, confirmation of revision on
account of any error, omission or irregularity in the complaint, summons,
warrant, proclamation, order judgement or other proceedings before or during
trial or in any inquiry or other proceedings under this Code, or any error,
or irregularity in any sanction for the prosecution unless in the opinion of
that Court, a failure of justice has in fact been occasioned thereby.
(2) In determining whether any error, omission or irregularity in any
proceeding under this Code, or any error or irregularity in any sanction for
the prosecution has occasioned a failure of justice, the Court shall have
regard to the fact whether the objection could and should have been raised
at an earlier stage in the proceedings.
466. Defect or error not to make attachment unlawful :- No attachment
made under this Code shall be deemed unlawful, nor shall any person making
the same be deemed to trespasser, on account of any defect or want of form
in summons, conviction, writ of attachment or other proceedings relating
thereto.
CHAPTER
XXXVI
LIMITATION
FOR TAKING COGNIZANCE OF CERTAIN OFFENCES
467. Definitions:-For
the purposes of this chapter unless the context otherwise requires, "period
of limitation" means the period specified in Section 468 for taking
cognizance of an offence.
468. Bar to taking cognizance after lapse of the period of limitation:-(1)
Except as otherwise provided elsewhere in this Code, no Court shall take
cognizance of an offence of the category specified in sub-section (2), after
the expiry of the period of limitation.
(2) The period of limitation shall be :-
(a) six months, if the offence is punishable with fine only;
(b) one year, if the offence is punishable with imprisonment for a term not
exceeding one year;
(c) three years, if the offence is punishable with imprisonment for a term
exceeding one year but not exceeding three years.
(3) For the purposes of this section, the period of limitation, in relation
to offences which may be tried together, shall be determined with reference
to the offence which is punishable with the more severe punishment or, as
the case may be, the most severe punishment.
469. Commencement of the period of limitation:- (1) The period of
limitation, in relation to an offender, shall commence -
(a) on the date of the offence; or
(b) where the commission of the offence was not known to the person
aggrieved by the offence or to any police officer, the first day on which
offence comes to the knowledge of such person or to any police officer,
whichever is earlier; or
(c) where it is not known by whom the offence committed, the first day on
which the identity of the offender is known to the person aggrieved by the
offence or to the police officer making investigation into the offence,
whichever is earlier
(2) In computing the said period, the day from which such period is to be
computed shall be excluded.
470. Exclusion of time in certain cases:--- (1) In computing the
period of limitation, the time during which any person has been prosecuting
with due diligence another prosecution, whether in a Court of first instance
or in a Court of appeal or revision, against the offender, shall be
excluded:
Provided that no such exclusion shall be made unless the prosecution relates
to the same facts and is prosecuted in good faith in a Court which from
defect of jurisdiction or other cause of a like nature, is unable to
entertain it.
(2) Where the institution of the prosecution in respect of an offence has
been stayed by an injunction or order, then, in computing the period of
limitation, the period of the continuance of the injunction or order, the
day on which it was issued or made, and the day on which it was withdrawn,
shall be excluded.
(3) Where notice of prosecution for an offence been given, or where, under
any law for the time being, in force, the previous consent or sanction of
the Government or any other authority is required for the institution of any
prosecution for an offence, then, in computing the period of limitation, the
period of such notice or, as the case be, the time required for obtaining
such consent or sanction shall be excluded.
Explanation:- In computing the time required for obtaining the consent or
sanction of the Government or any other authority, the date on which the
application was made for obtaining the consent or sanction and the date of
receipt of the order of the Government or other authority shall both be
excluded.
(4) In computing the period of limitation, the time during which the
offender,-
(a) has been absent from India or from any territory outside India which is
under the administration of the Central Government, or
(b) has avoided arrest by absconding or concealing himself, shall be
excluded.
471. Exclusion of date on which Court is closed:- Where the period of
limitation expires on a day when the Court is closed, the Court may take
cognizance on the day on which the Court reopens.
Explanation:- A Court shall be deemed to be closed on any day within the
meaning of this section, if, during its normal working hours, it remains
closed on that day.
472. Continuing offence:- In the case of a continuing offence, a
fresh period of limitation shall begin to run at every moment of the time
during which the offence continues.
473. Extension of period of limitation in certain cases:-
Notwithstanding anything contained in the foregoing provisions of this
chapter, any court may take cognizance of an offence after the expiry of the
period of limitation, if it is satisfied of the facts and in the
circumstances of the case that the delay has been properly explained or that
it is necessary so to do in the interests of justice
CHAPTER
XXXVII
MISCELLANEOUS
474. Trials before
High Courts:-
When an offence is tried by the High Court otherwise than under Section 407,
it shall, in the trial of the offences, observe the same procedure as a
Court of Sessions would observe if it were trying the case.
475. Delivery to commanding officers of persons liable to be tried by
Court-martial :-(1) The Central Government may make rules, consistent
with this Code and the Army Act, 1950 (46 of 1950), the Navy Act, 1957 (62
of 1957), and the Air Force Act, 1950 (45 of 1950), and any other law,
relating to the Armed Forces of the Union, for the time being in force, as
to cases in which persons subject to military, naval or air-force law, or
such other law, shall be tried by a Court to which this Code applies, or by
a Court martial; and when any person is brought before a Magistrate and
charged with an offence for which he is liable to be tried either by a Court
to which this Code applies or by a Court-martial, such Magistrate shall have
regard to such rules, and shall in proper cases deliver him, together with a
statement of the offence of which he is accused, to the commanding officer
of the unit to which he belongs, or to the commanding officer of the nearest
military, naval or air-force station, as the case may be, for the purpose of
being tried by a Court-martial.
Explanation:- In this Section-
(a) "Unit" includes a regiment, corps, ship, detachment, group battalion or
Company,
(b) "Court-Martial" includes any Tribunal with the powers similar to those
of a Court-martial constituted under the relevant law applicable to the
Armed Forces of the Union.
(2) Every Magistrate shall, on receiving a written application for that
purpose by the commanding officer of any unit or body of soldiers, sailors
or airmen stationed or employed at any such place, use his utmost endeavours
to apprehend and secure any person accused of such offence.
(3) A High Court may, if it thinks fit, direct that a prisoner detained in
any jail situate within the State be brought before a Court-martial for
trial or to be examined touching any matter pending before the
Court-martial.
476. Forms:- Subject to the power conferred by Article 227 of the
Constitution, the forms set forth in the Second Schedule, with such
variations as the circumstances of each case require, may be used for the
respective purposes therein mentioned, and if used shall be sufficient.
477. Power of High Court to make rules:- (1) Every High Court may,
with the previous approval of the State Government, make rules.
(a) as to the persons who may be permitted to act as petition writers in the
Criminal Courts subordinate to it;
(b) regulating the issue of licences to such persons, the conduct of
business by them, and the scale of fees to be charged by them;
(c) providing a penalty for a contravention of any of the rules so made and
determining the authority by which such contravention may be investigated
and the penalties imposed;
(d) any other matter which is required to be, or may be, prescribed.
(2) All rules made under this section shall be published in the Official
Gazette.
478. Power to alter functions allocated to Executive Magistrate in
certain cases:- If the Legislative Assembly of a State by a resolution
so permits, the State Government may, after consultation with the High
Court, by notification, direct that references in Sections 108, 109, 110,
145 and 147 to an Executive Magistrate shall be construed as references to a
Judicial Magistrate of the first class.
STATE AMENDMENTS
Andaman and Nicobar Islands ; Dadra and Nagar Haveli, Lakshadweep Islands :-
In Section 478, the words "if the State Legislature by a resolution so
requires" shall be omitted Regn. 1 of 1974, w.e.f. 30-3-1974.
Maharashtra - For the words "to an Executive Magistrate shall be construed",
substitute the words "to an Executive Magistrate in the areas of the State
outside Greater Bombay shall be construed", Maharashtra Act 1 of 1978, w.e.f.
15-4-1978.
479. Case in which Judge or Magistrate is personally interested:- No
Judge or Magistrate shall, except with permission of the Court to which an
appeal lies from Court, try or commit for trial any case to or in which he
is a party, or personally interested, and no Judge or Magistrate shall hear
an appeal from any judgement or order passed or made by himself.
Explanation:- A Judge or Magistrate shall not be deemed to be a party to, or
personally interested in, any case by reason only that he is concerned
therein in a public capacity, or by reason only that he has viewed the place
in which an offence is alleged to have been committed, or other place in
which any other transaction material to the case is alleged to have
occurred, and made an inquiry in connection with the case.
480. Practising pleader not to sit as Magistrate in certain Courts:-
No pleader who practises in the Court of any Magistrate shall sit as a
Magistrate in that Court or in any Court within the local jurisdiction of
that Court.
STATE AMENDMENT
Karnataka :- After Section 480, the following new Section 480A shall be
inserted-
"480A. Other powers of Magistrate..- Any Judicial Magistrate or Executive
Magistrate shall be entitled to attest, verify or authenticate any document
brought before him for the purpose of attestation, verification or
authentication, as the case may be, and to affix seals thereon, as may be
prescribed by any law for the time being in force." Karnataka Act 35 of
1984.
481. Public servant concerned in sale not purchase or bid for property:-
A public servant having any duty to perform in connection with the sale of
any property under this Code shall not purchase or bid for the property.
482. Saying of inherent powers of High Court:- Nothing in this Code
shall be deemed to limit or affect the inherent powers of the High Court to
make such orders as may be necessary to give effect to any order under this
Code, or to prevent abuse of the process of any Court or otherwise to secure
the ends of justice.
483. Duty of High Court to exercise continuous superintendence over
Courts of Judicial Magistrates:- Every High Court shall so exercise its
superintendence over the Courts of Judicial Magistrates subordinate to it as
to ensure that there is an expeditious and proper disposal of cases by such
Magistrates.
484. Repeal and savings:- (1) The Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (5
of 1898), is hereby repealed.
(2) Notwithstanding such repeal-
(a) if, immediately before the date on which this Code comes into force,
there is any appeal, application trial, inquiry or investigation pending
then, such appeal, application, trial, inquiry or investigation shall be
disposed of, continued, held or made, the case may be, in accordance with
the provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (5 of 1898), as in
force immediately before such commencement (hereinafter referred to as the
old Code), as if this Code had not come into force: Provided that every
inquiry under Chapter XVIII of the old Code, which is pending at the
commencement of this Code, shall be dealt with and disposed of in accordance
with the provisions of this Code;
(b) all notifications published, proclamations issued, powers conferred,
forms prescribed, local jurisdictions defined, sentences passed and order
rules and appointments, not being appointments as Special Magistrates, made
under the old Code are which are in force immediately before the
commencement of this Code, shall be deemed respectively, to have been
published, issued, conferred, prescribed, defined, passed or made under the
corresponding provisions of the Code;
(c) any sanction accorded or consent given under the old Code in pursuance
of which no proceeds was commenced under that Code, shall be deemed to have
been accorded or given under the corresponding provisions of this Code and
proceedings may be commenced under this Code in pursuance of such sanction
of consent;
(d) the provisions of the old Code shall continue to apply in relation to
every prosecution against a Ruler within the meaning of Article 363 of the
Constitution.
(3) Where the period prescribed for an application or other proceeding under
the Old Code had expired on or before the commencement of this Code, nothing
in this Code shall be construed as enabling any such application to be made
or proceeding to be commenced under this Code by reason only of the fact
that a longer period therefor is prescribed by this Code or provisions are
made in this Code for the extension of time.
STATE AMENDMENT
Uttar Pradesh :- (1) In sub-section (2), after clause (d), the following
clause shall he inserted.
"(e) the provisions of the United Provinces Borstal Act, 1938 (U.P. Act 7 of
(1938), the United Provinces First Offenders Probation Act 1938 (U.P. Act 6
of 1938) and the Uttar Pradesh Children Act, 1951, (U.P. Act 1 of 1951)
shall continue in force in the State of Uttar Pradesh until altered or
repealed or amended by the competent Legislature or other competent
authority, and accordingly, the provisions of Section 360 of this Code shall
not apply to that State, and the provisions of Section 361 shall apply with
the substitution of references to the Central Acts named therein by
references to the corresponding Acts in force in that State." U.P. Act 16 of
1976, w.e.f. 1-5-1976.
(2) In sub-section (2), clause (a), the following second proviso shall be
inserted:-
"Provided further that the provisions of Section 326 of this Code as amended
by the Code of Criminal Procedure (U.P. Amendment Act) Act, 1976 shall also
apply to every trial pending in a Court of Sessions at the commencement of
this Code and also pending at the commencement of the Code of Criminal
Procedure (U.P. Amendment) Act, 1983." U.P. Act 1 of 1984, w.e.f. 1-5-1984.r
offence, although he is not charged with it.
(3) When a person is charged with an offence, he may, be convicted of an
attempt to commit such offence although the attempt is not separately
charged.
(4) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to authorise a conviction of any
minor offence where the conditions requisite for the initiation of
proceedings in respect of that minor offence have not been satisfied.
|